emkhn ■s WM Class Book * -P h - PRESENTED BY RANTHORPE. J'avais entrepris une lutte insenste ; je combattais la mis^re avec ma plume. H de Balzac. Wie verfiihrt die Natur, um Hohes und Niedres im Menschen Zu verbinden ? Sie stellt Eitelkeit zwischen hinein ! G5THB. LONDON: CHAPMAN AND HALL, 186, STRAND. MDCCCXLVII. ?f, A sistence than as a lawyer's clerk." "What, literature, I suppose?" asked his father, with a cold sneer. " Yes, literature," proudly replied Percy. A loud, contemptuous laugh was all the answer his father vouchsafed. Percy was nettled. 26 EANTHORPE. " I know you tliink authors are a despicable race, living in garrets — " " Starving in them," interrupted His father. " 1 never said living. Mere hirelings of booksellers and editors." Percy continued, without noticing the interruption, — " And however absurd such a notion, I will not attempt to argue you out of it. But I have resolved to quit my office." " Then you quit my house at the same time. What ! am I to see you throwing up a certainty — a livelihood !" " A livelihood ! you do not imagine that my salary of nve-and-twenty pounds a year would support me.'' " You may get something better." " That I intend; and at once." " Very well; only don't give up your situation till you have got something else." " I must give it up at once." " You shan't do any thing of the kind," fiercely ex- claimed his father, whose irascible nature was greatly excited by this dialogue. * Why not?" u Because I don't choose it, sir." " Suppose I have done it already." " Suppose — you're a fool !" " Then understand me father, I have done it* " You have !" exclaimed his father, bounding from his chair, " then go this instant and undo your folly, or you shall never set your foot within my doors again." "I would rather quit the house than stay in it a clerk." A heavy blow on the face was his father's answer I Stung with rage at the indignity, Percy sprang from the chair, hurried to his own room, packed up his few clothes, and left the house in silence. When out in the LE PREMIER PAS. 27 open street he wandered for some time unconscious of every thing around him. Bitter feelings assailed him ; but his haughty and imperious nature found a sort of delight in the frank struggle with fate and circumstance which now awaited him. Resolved to owe no more to his father ; resolved to carve his own path, he trusted in the strength of his own right arm. The world was before him, vast as his desires, and he was free ! Free ! what a thrilling sensation is that when the young adventurer first quits the paternal mansion to carve for himself a pathway in the world ! How strong the sense of existence, when he first feels independence! Boyhood retreats into the past ; manhood begins. The world's burden rests upon the adventurer's shoulders, and rests lightly, supported as it is by Hope. Inexperienced as Percy was, and anxious to play some part in the world, he looked upon his deliverance from the paternal authority as a blessing. A load was rolled from his heart. He began to scrutinise his position as a gene- ral examines the plans of a campaign. He had twelve pounds, ten shillings — a half year's salary — for the whole of his fortune, and this he had to husband till he should get employment. He took a bed-room near the street where Wynton lived. For this he paid five shillings a week. His breakfast would cost him twopence- halfpenny, viz., a penny loaf and a cup of coffee; his dinner, two penny loaves and a bit of cheese or bacon, would cost threepence or threepence-halfpenny ; his tea the same as breakfast. Thus for eightpence or ninepence a day he could exist. Having made these calculations and set apart the money in small parcels for each week, he wrote a long letter to Isola full of regret at being separated from her, 28 RANTHORPE. but instilling into her his own confident hopes that all was for the best, and that they would soon be united. He asked her to send him his books, and appointed a place where she could meet him. " My dearest Percy," she said, when they met, " there is no chance of your father's relenting unless you apolo- gise to him." Ci Apologise for what ? For his having struck me ?" " Had you given the blow he could not be more indig- nant/' she replied. And this was true. Mr. Ranthorpe quite hated his son at that moment ; hated him as we sometimes hate those we have wronged. ie Never will I move one step," replied Percy ; " never will I again live under his roof. My anger is gone, perhaps, but all filial respect is gone with it. Home has long been irksome to me, now it would be intolerable." "What will you do?" " Work. I have talents. Hundreds of men whom I believe to have less than I are earning independence ; why should not I ? Literature I was destined to. I always wished to try my venture on its seas ; now I am forced upon them." Thus lightly and confidently did this sanguine boy cast himself upon the perilous bosom of that sea wherein so many brave hearts have been shipwrecked. It was a fearful step. Hundreds of young men take it with the thoughtless recklessness of youth. They confound their desire for distinction with the power of distinguishing themselves. Doubtless the temptation is great. "Oh! what a luxury is there in that first love of the Muse ! that process by which we give a palpable form to the long intangible visions which have flitted across us."* The * Ernest Maltravers. LE PREMIER PAS. 29 delight of appearing in print, of being to thousands of readers that near and cherished friend which a favourite author is to us ! Is not that temptation enough to seduce the young and aspiring into any peril ? Unhappily none know the danger save those who have escaped it. An author ! 'tis a venerable name ! How few deserve it, and what numbers claim ! Unblest with sense, above their peers refined Who shall stand up, dictators of mankind ?* The combat commenced. His pinching poverty was endured with firmness, if not indifference ; but his re- peated ill-success in the efforts he made to get employ- ment was more hard to bear. He wrote tales and sketches, hoping to get them inserted in the magazines. All were refused. He then suspected that he should be forced to write down to the magazine readers. Fatal delusion, which has misled so many ! He tried what he called the "popular style;" but as writing badly with malice prepense never yet succeeded with any one, so did it in nowise profit him. His popular style was as merci- lessly rejected as his ambitious style. Many a long night did he sit in his small room reflect- ing on his position. As his burning head rested upon his hand, and his eyes mechanically wandered over the various plans and manuscripts strewed before him, he sometimes felt a sick despair growing over him. He counted his finances, and was shocked to find them so nearly exhausted. A few more weeks, and beggary stared him in the face. Want had been his familiar playfellow ; but Hope had been always at his side point- ing to the sunny future. Now hope seemed to vanish. If his small fund were to be exhausted before he got em- * Young. 30 KANTHORPE. ployment, lie would have no other resource than to enlist as a common soldier. What a prospect for an ambitious youth ! His prospects shortly brightened a little. Wynton had got an engagement on a weekly newspaper of good repute, and hoped to be able to introduce Percy to the editor, and so manage to find a place for him also. The sight of Wynton installed in new and well-furnished lodgings, with all the necessaries of life about him, was peculiarly gratifying to Percy, not only because he re- joiced in his friend's fortune, but also because the change in that friend's fortune looked like a harbinger of hope to him. There remained only money enough for three weeks' penurious existence, when a note came inviting him to dinner at Mr. Rixelton's, the editor of the paper on which Wynton was engaged. He wrote a hurried hopeful note to Isola announcing the event, and set forth with a lighter heart than had beat in his breast for many months. RANTHORPE BECOMES A JOURNALIST. 31 CHAPTER V. RANTHORPE BECOMES A JOURNALIST. If by the liberty of the press we understand merely the liberty of discussing public measures and public opinions, let us have as much of it as you please; but if it means the liberty of affronting, calum- niating, and defaming another, I, for my part, own myself willing to part with my share of it; and shall cheerfully exchange my liberty of abusing others for the privilege of not being abused myself. Franklin. Je critiquai sans esprit, et sans choix Impunement le theatre, la chaire. Voltaire. The dinner was copious; the conversation noisy. If authors, as a race, do not talk well, they certainly talk a great deal, especially when together. Ranthorpe at first was silent : awed by finding himself amongst acknowledged writers : men who treated articles and books as matters of course ! But his natural vanity soon loosened his tongue. He wished to shine, and he shone. With the guests he was in ecstacies. In the life of an author, there are few events more highly prized than making the acquaintance of literary men who have attained some success. People talk of the envy and jealousy of authors; but it is a vulgar error. I firmly believe that no author, unless a man of the 32 RANTHORPE. meanest and most envious disposition, ever envied the success of another. Authors are an imaginative and sympathetic race. They gladly associate with each other. They take keen interest in each other's projects. And to an obscure author, the acquaintance of one acknowledged by the world is always peculiarly fascinating ; Ranthorpe was fascinated. Of the assembled guests I may introduce the reader to Mr. Joyce, a middle-aged Scotchman, whom every body declared to be " a regular trump." Of Scotchmen this much may be said : let the national character be what it may, whenever the individuals free themselves from its prejudices they are glorious fellows. When a Scotchman Is a " trump," he is always an Ace of trumps. Joyce was an Ace. His large, round, good-humoured face beaming with intelligence, was the index of a large, wise soul. His presence was sunshine in a room. He was friendly with all men, whatever their tempers or opinions. No one ever quarrelled with him; everybody asked his advice, and what is more, took it. He knew a little of every thing, and a great deal of a great many things. He had learn- ing, taste, and supreme good sense. He had written one of the most popular books of our day, and had never put his name to it, although the world attributed it to another. He could argue with men, and gossip agreeably with women. He was considerably pestered by country cousins, who absorbed a great deal of his time, but he bore with them with amazing equanimity. Ranthorpe instinctively took to him; and they afterwards became intimate friends. Opposite Joyce sat Wynton, and by his side sat Pun- gent, the editor of the " Exterminator." Pungent was a small, thin, sleek-looking man of about forty. He was RANTHORPE BECOMES A JOURNALIST. 33 always dressed like a clergyman ; having the two-fold ambition of being taken for a wit, and mistaken for a clergyman. The Rev. Sydney Smith was his ideal. Though overflowing with kindness, he unfortunately mistook asperity for wit ; so that in all London you could not find a kinder man, nor a crueller critic. The early pranks of the " Edinburgh Review' 5 had turned his head. In their lively ridicule he saw the perfection of criticism ; and he imitated it, unconsciously omitting the liveli- ness. This sleek, kind, cruel man uttered sarcasms with a breath of tenderness; he wounded your self-love with unspeakable suavity. Ask any thing of him but his good word, and you were certain to obtain it. Opposite Pungent sat Bourne, a pale, melancholy look- ing man, doing his best to appear romantic, who having failed to make any figure in Parliament, had thrown himself upon literature for distinction. He was a man of independent property, and could afford the ex- pensive luxury of literature : printing his own works 5 and being his own purchaser. His great ambition was that of a dramatic poet; he had printed several tragedies and one " ideal comedy." He had been enthusiastically praised by his friends; yet in spite of the eulogies showered on the second Shakspeare, neither managers nor public could be induced to look at his plays. " Does any one know how the new play went off on Thursday?" asked Joyce. " What ! haven't you seen the ' Exterminator?"' asked Pungent. " No." " No ; then do so ; you know I am devoted to the drama, pen and pencil-case." Then, in his blandest tone, Pungent added; " I think I have settled the author." D 34 RANTHORPE. " Quite right !" said Bourne, vehemently; tf such trash ! but it's just like the managers to bring out this stuff. What annoyed me was to see a parcel of stupid fellows- friends of the author — who went purposely to applaud. For my part I went to hiss ; and hiss I did." " That was kind," quietly suggested Rixelton. ' * It was conscientious. I foresaw what it would be; else how could a manager have been induced to produce it ? Managers have an abstract horror of good plays ; their ignoble souls delight only in trash." " How can that be?" asked Joyce. " How it can be I don't know; but it is. However, there is always consolation in a play d — d. Every failure is a lesson. Managers, on the verge of ruin, will be forced to produce good pieces ; forced to bend an unwilling knee to genius, i" bide my time. The Ideal must be recog- nised at last." " My good fellow/' said Joyce, smiling, " do you really think the public cares about the Ideal? It is not the want of our age. The Ideal is only fitted for ages of faith, and ours is an age of scepticism." " Oh, surely not," interposed Ranthorpe. " Well, then, of prosaism. People now care for Use, not Beauty. It was once otherwise. The Greeks, with all their splendid architecture, never had a bridge. The Italians, who worshipped the delicate genius of Benvenuto Cellini, could not boast of a lock. We have superb bridges and locks, but we have lost the sense of beauty. Out of Leda's egg our age would make — a custard." " Joyce is quite right," said Pungent. " Poetry, as we are repeatedly told, is a drug.'* " Yes, drug-ipoetry,''' retorted Ranthorpe. " But in spite of what we are perpetually told, our daily experience BANTHOEPE BECOMES A JOUENALIST. 35 contradicts it. Poetry can never die; never become a drug. It is the incarnation of our dearest hopes, the ut- terance of our most passionate aspirings. When we have ceased to hope and ceased to feel, poetry will die, and not till then." " I attribute the present neglect of poetry, 5 ' said Pun- gent, "to the indifference of critics, who, allowing trash to pass without reprehension, have corrupted the art. In your paper, Rixelton, I am sorry to see a want of stern- ness. You have no epigram — no Attic salt — believe me you want light and shade — a due blending of blame and praise/ 5 " That's capital," rejoined Rixelton, " when you never praise." u It gives breadth to criticism/ 3 " Shall I tell you the real truth?" said Rixelton. "I began my career tolerably reckless of the self-love of others. I scattered, with an unthinking hand, no small quantity of the Attic salt, you mention, into the open wounds of authors' self-love. I wrote a book. Gentle- men, I then felt that criticism was not a joke! I was 1 cut up.' I had the measure meted out to me that I had meted out to others. I was humiliated — maddened — I, who had humiliated and maddened others for so long. From that moment I was a changed man." " But/' objected Pungent, " it is just as bad praising a book which does not deserve it. You mislead the public if you speak of a work as if its few merits were samples of the whole." " And," rejoined Rixelton, " does it not still more grossly mislead the public when a few faults are dwelt on as if they were samples of the whole ?" d2 36 RANTHOKPE. " Might one not accomplish the real object of criti- cism," asked Ranthorpe, "by n^ver blaming without as- signing reasons, and never praising without sincerity ?" "An ideal standard," said Joyce, " and not easily reached." "But to which we should constantly aspire," replied Ranthorpe. " You will never convince me/' said Bourne, " that blame, however just and temperate, will not exasperate an author. 55 " The surgeon and the assassin both use the knife/ 5 said Ranthorpe; "the one with kindness and science, the other with wantonness and malice. The one cuts that he may cure, the other that he may kill." " Mr. Ranthorpe is right, 55 said Rixelton, approvingly, " and although perhaps the patient might wince under the operation, he would nevertheless regard the operator with respect and gratitude. 55 A few days after this dinner Rixelton, who was greatly pleased with Ranthorpe, offered him an engagement, which I need not say was accepted with intense delight. He had to write the theatrical critiques, and occa- sionally review poems. For this he received a guinea a week — to him a fortune ! The world again was bright to him. The cherished ambition of his life was once more possible. Isola smiled at his enthusiasm, and half shared it. But life was ex- tremely sad now that Percy no longer lived under the same roof with her, and she was condemned to hear con- stant reproaches uttered by his father respecting his un- feeling conduct, mixed with sombre prophecies of his coming to some dreadful end. RANTHORPE BECOMES A JOURNALIST. 37 The old man continued obstinate. He would not listen to Isola's pleadings in his son's favour. He called him an ungrateful wretch, who repaid kindness with insolence. And as about this time he had entered upon a specu- lation which promised to be highly lucrative, he felt a savage pleasure in contemplating his success, and think- ing that Percy had shut himself from all participation in it. I verily believe that, much as he loved money, he cared more for the success of this new speculation from the triumph it would give him over his son than for the money it would bring. And it was with real pain that he heard of Percy's new situation. This escape from want vexed him. He had gloated over the idea of his son reduced to absolute want, and forced to come to him a suppliant. He knew that nothing short of that could bend him. But he also knew how scanty the sum of money he had in his possession, and greatly marvelled at its not having long been exhausted. This situation on a newspaper, therefore, which Isola told him of with pride, thinking that this first glimpse of success might soften him, was doubly hateful. Hateful, because it was a refuge for Percy, and prevented the necessity of his yielding; and hateful, because that refuge was literature. Meanwhile, Percy was supremely happy. Passionately fond of the drama, he undertook the task of criticism as a luxury. He scarcely ever missed an evening's per- formance. Beyond this, conceive the pride of " being on the press !" His pen was a power ; at least he thought so. The printing-office, dirty, murky, and ill- ventilated, was a sacred spot to him. He rejoiced in its gaseous- heated atmosphere ; he loved the smell of the ink and damp paper. In a word, all the disagreeable things con- 38 EANTHORPE. nected with his office were converted into pleasures, by the fact of their relation to the great profession of litera- ture : they were les coulisses of the great theatre on which he hoped to play so illustrious a part. Every Sunday morning the paper lay upon his break- fast-table, and made him feel that he was " somebody, " as he cut the leaves and eagerly read over his own con- tributions. THE ORPHANS. 39 CHAPTER VI. THE ORPHANS. Ah! I remember well (how can I But evermore remember well) when first Our flame began, when scarce we knew not 'twas The flame we felt; when as we sat and sigh'd And look'd upon each other and conceived Not what we ail'd, — yet something we did ail; And yet were well, and yet we were not well, And what was our disease we could not tell. Samuel Daniel : Hymeris Triumph. Speed was in my footsteps ; Hope was in mine eye; And the soul of poesy Was my dear ally. Earth was then as beautiful, — As, as is the sky, When I look'd beside me And saw — that you were nigh. Barry Cornwall. Percy at length got so accustomed to all the work of the press, that it became a l{ matter of course " to him, and ceased to be a pleasure. But as he was writing another volume of poems, he was glad to be earning a subsistence until they should give him celebrity. In the course of a few months he had made several 40 RANTHORPE. literary acquaintances, and had gradually been initiated into many of the secrets of the profession. His lust for fame continued unabated. He had before him many sad warnings ; but he pursued the course of his ambitious dreams undaunted. His father fell dangerously ill; but refused to see him. In vain Isola begged that she might send for him. The old man sternly declared he should not enter the house, until he could enter it having renounced literature for ever. Percy was grieved at his father's obstinacy, and at times was nearly yielding. But he cherished his ambition too much; he could not renounce it. Twice or thrice a day he called to ascertain the state of his father's health, which was gradually becoming worse. One day Isola said to him : " Percy, you know how your father has resisted all my entreaties. Nevertheless, in spite of his obstinacy, he loves you, and would gladly see you. Come with me." " He will refuse to see me." " Come with me into the room. Venture it. He will not have the heart to bid you quit it." " It is worth risking," said Percy. They agreed that he should enter the room quite as a matter of course, and take no notice whatever of what had occurred. " How are you now, my dear father?" said Percy, ten- derly, as he marched resolutely up to the bed-side, and took the old man's hand. " Better — better — my dear boy," said the old man, with tears in his eyes. Isola was right. The sight of his boy was too much for his anger; it vanished at once. There is a chord in a parent's heart which is never touched in vain. However THE ORPHANS. 41 angry we may justly be with a child — he is still our child, and our hearts yearn irresistibly towards him. The old man pressed his boy's hand in silence; gazed on his exquisitely beautiful face with all a father's fond- ness and admiration; reading in its lines such grace, beauty, tenderness, and promise, that he wondered at him- self how he could ever have felt otherwise than he did then. Percy, touched at his manner, was about to ask forgiveness. The haughty boy, whom no harshness could have moved, was melted by these signs of affection. " Silence on that," replied his father, mournfully, shaking his head as he interrupted him, "let bygones be bygones. I am not long for this world." "Oh! do not say that." " I would not say it, did I not feel it. But it is too true. I have not long to live. The little time I have yet must be devoted to the future, not the past." They prayed together fervently. By his bed-side sat Percy three days and three nights, without stirring. He could not be persuaded to leave his father, whom he felt he had not treated with the consideration which was his due. He slept in a chair; or, while he watched the troubled slumbers of the dying man, prayed in silence for his recovery. As he watched thus one night, he was startled by the expression of agony and the heavy breathing of the dying man, who awoke in terror. The old man sat up in his bed, looked wildly at his son, then gazing abstractedly at the shadows moving on the wall, as the night lamp nickered, muttered — " Thank God ! — only a dream — only a dream. 1 ' He then sank back upon his pillow, and complained of 42 EANTHOEPE. thirst. Percy brought him some barley-water; which, having drunk, the old man said slowly — " My dear boy, dreams are sometimes warnings from above." Percy would not contradict him. " I have had a warning about you. It seemed to me that — as if — I dreamed — " His voice became inaudible ; a sharp pang shot through him; he closed his eyes and was silent. The stillness of the room — the flickering lamp — the heavy breathing, occasionally swelling into moaning — the distortion of the features — fearfully impressed Percy's imagination, weakened as he was by continual watching. He longed to hear his father's dream. Free from all superstition as he was, he could not shake off an indefinite fear and anxiety respecting this dream. At length the old man's features became composed — he sank again to sleep. From this sleep he never woke but once, and that was only two hours afterwards. "Percy — I'm dying — promise me — that — you will — give up literature — my dream — promise me — literature — destruction — scaffold !" This last word was a hissing whisper; and with it he expired. Had the old man lived one minute longer, he would have extorted the promise from his son; which would have been religiously kept. Indeed, so impressed was Percy by the scene, that he inwardly resolved to obey his father's last wish, whatever it might cost him. But resolutions made in such moments are seldom kept. On cooler reflection, he began to see that it was impos- sible for him to give up his career ; and that his father THE ORPHANS. 43 only desired it from a prejudiced and unenlightened view of literature. Yet the hissing of the word " scaffold " ever and anon rung ominously in his ears ! Isola and Percy both grieved deeply. They were now orphans in the world. As the funeral ceremony concluded they clung to each other in a wild embrace, as if each were now the world to each. When the first flow of grief was passed, and they began to look around them, it was found that, when all debts were paid, Percy's father had left nearly two hundred pounds. This seemed to them a fortune; and when Isola communicated her intentions of earning her own live- lihood, as companion to Lady Theresa Wilmington, he said — " Dearest, you never can think of it. You, too, at the beck and call of any one. No ! Let us marry at once. We have money to furnish a house, and begin the world with; and, for the future, I am easy on that score." " No, no, no," replied she, "I must work as well as you." "But why?" " Because we are not rich enough to marry." " Nonsense ! We have enough to start with." "Yes; but we cannot live upon that. Darling Percy, you have your name yet to make in the world. You will have to publish ' The Dreams of Youth ' at your own expense. When once that work is fairly known, I'm sure you will never want employment; but till then it would be madness in us to marry." "Do you, then, fear poverty?" "That is unkind in you, Percy. You know I should not feel poverty with you. But I prefer feeling the humiliations which I may meet with as a companion, to that far deeper and irremediable humiliation of being a 44 EANTHOEPE. burden upon you. Besides, surely we are young enough to wait." Poor girl ! how little she suspected that one day her arguments would be turned against her ! Percy was annoyed at first; but he soon saw that her reasoning was just, and he knew her heart too well to suppose that her fears were selfish. He himself, though violent, and apt to be roused whenever his wishes, how- ever unreasonable, were in the least opposed, was generous enough to comprehend her generosity. " I have been thinking," said he, the next day, " of your going to Lady Theresa's, and cannot reconcile myself to it. So I have a proposition to make. You are some day to be my wife, are you not?" She pressed his hand as her only answer. " Very well; then of course you consider what is mine is yours. Now, you shall not go to Lady Theresa; but the money left me by my poor father I hand over to you. It shall be your support until I can get regular employ- ment to justify our marriage." " Generous creature," she exclaimed, kissing him. " You accept then?" "Do I accept? No, Percy; but it is not pride which makes me decline. The money is necessary for your advancement; I will not touch a shilling of it." " How, necessary? foolish girl." " First, to publish your poems." " Well, then, I will deduct the sum necessary for that; the rest shall be yours." " It will not prevent my going to Lady Theresa's. Percy, Percy, what extravagant ideas have you got re- specting my situation ? It may be irksome, but it has surely nothing degrading. Besides, I repeat, the money THE ORPHANS. 45 is necessary for your pursuit. You must leave the paper, and devote yourself to some work — your tragedy, for instance. This you cannot do, unless you have money to live on. In two or three years you will be famous and rich." This struggle of generosity was often renewed; but Isola was always invincible. She shared his hopes and aspira- tions, and, therefore, could not think of, in any manner, standing in the way of his advancement. She said that he was wasted on a newspaper, and ought to accomplish higher things. She accepted the situation. She had to submit to the too common lot of orphan girls ; but she was upheld by the proud consciousness of being no obstacle to her lover's success. He gave up his situation on the newspaper. He had attained the Archimedean standing point — the irov arc* of his career; and to move the world was now his object. And as he saw his poems through the press, and dwelt with all an author's fondness on their beauties, he smiled down the vague fears, which the recurring sound of his father's sombre warning ever and anon called up. A scaffold? What connexion had literature with that ? BOOK II. THE L I O 3ST. To what base ends, and by what abject ways, Are mortals urged through sacred lust of praise! Pope. Er erinnerte sich der Zeit, in der sein Geist durch ein unbedingtes hoffnungsreiches Streben empor gehoben wurde, wo er in dem leb- haftesten Genusse aller Art, wie in einem Elemente schwamm. Es ward ihm deutlich, wie er jetzt in ein unbestimmtes Schlendern ge- rathen war! Gothe. THE LITERARY LION. 49 CHAPTER I. THE LITERARY LION. Les devoirs de la societe lui devorent son temps ; et le temps est le seul capital des gens qui n'ont que leur intelligence pour fortune. II aime a, briller; le monde irritera ses desirs qu'aucune somme ne pourra satisfaire; il depensera de l'argent et n'en gagnera pas. Les succes litteraires ne se conquerent que dans la solitude et par d'obstin6s travaux. De Balzac. The ball was splendid. The rooms were crowded with lovely women, and distinguished men. Grisi was pouring forth a torrent of song from her exquisite throat; and the guests were absolutely listening ! " Sir Charles," said Florence Wilmington (niece of the Lady Theresa, with whom Isola had been for some months as a companion); " Sir Charles^ you know every body, do tell me who that is leaning against the piano talking to Grisi?" Sir Charles, thus interrogated, put up his glass, and let it fall carelessly, saying, — " Don't know, positively." " Emily, my dear," said Florence, to the daughter of the hostess, who was then passing, " do tell me who that young man is, talking to Grisi." " Don't you know Percy Ranthorpe?" e 50 RANTHORPE. "What, the author of 'The Dreams of Youth?' I thought he was a poet by his beauty. How divinely handsome !" " Shall I introduce him, Florence?" " Do, Emily dear, above all things!" " Take care of your heart, then," said Emily, laughing; " for Apollo himself was not more fascinating." " Certainly not handsomer!" " Will you risk your heart, then?" " Bah! let him beware of his!" said the beauty, with a charming toss of the head. And yet any girl might have well been warned against so handsome a man as Percy Ranthorpe. He was quite a picture, as he stood there in an impassioned conversation upon music with the lovely young Grisi. Giulia Grisi was superbly handsome at that period, like a Greek statue, in the mould of her head and bust ; and was pecu- liarly attractive to Ranthorpe, from having somewhat of the same kind of beauty as Isola. Nothing could be greater than the contrast of Ran- thorpe's appearance at that moment, with that at the period of his first introduction on the scene of this novel. Instead of the poor, ill-dressed, attorney's clerk, he was now dressed in the newest fashion, — he had become a " Lion." In a few minutes he was standing up with Florence Wilmington to a quadrille. " I dare say, Mr. Ranthorpe," said she, with a most winning air, " you will think me very missish ; but I must tell you, not only how often I have wished for the pleasure of your acquaintance, but also that I at once guessed who you were directly I saw you." A little fib, which belongs to the white lies of society. THE LITERARY LION. 51 Kanthorpe bowed. " But don't be vain," she said, archly; "for after all you disappointed me. I expected something more tra- gical and gloomy; something, in short, which should tell of the sadness uttered in your poems." " Are we unfortunate scribblers then bound to be always in a state of melancholy?" asked Percy. " Why, you would be more interesting." " I doubt it. A melancholy moment or so may serve as a condiment ; but one cannot dine off spices." " But I don't see any trace of sadness about you." " How could I be such a brute as to be sad when bask- ing in the sunshine of your smile?" " Prettily turned off. But you have desillusione me. I shall no longer believe in le morne desespoir of your poems." Florence was fond of studding her conversation with phrases borrowed from French novels. " If life were a quadrille, and I had you for my partner, be- lieve me there would be no longer any sadness in my muse." " Oh ! don't suppose that I am always gay," said she, bending her long voluptuous eyes upon him. " Are you ever sad?" " Yes; and if I had no cause, I would make one. Tou- jours perdrix is unwholesome. Perpetual gaiety is a curry without rice. I see another volume of poems advertised by you. Are we soon to have it?" u Very shortly, I hope." "Don't you admire Grisi? is she not delicieusement belle r " Like a bit of Greek sculpture." " Ah ! that's so like you authors ! As you believe books superior to realities, so you always prefer a statue to a e2 52 RANTHORPE. In this style they rattled on. Florence had made up her mind to a conquest; and Ranthorpe had shown no backwardness in replying to her advances. Accustomed as he had been for some months to the flatteries of drawing- rooms, he had learned to play the dangerous game of badinage as a necessary consequence of his position. He was neither surprised nor intoxicated by Florence's evident admiration. The success of the " Dreams of Youth" had been considerable. Indeed the small critics had not only " hailed the volume with delight/' but declared it " decidedly superior to any of the season;" some going so far as to pronounce the author a second Byron. Pungent alone remained true to his character, and was voluble with ponderous levities respecting the errors and crudities of the poems. He told Ranthorpe that it grieved him to speak so of his friend's work; but that he owed it to posterity to be uncompromising. His friend forgave him. The sounder critics, though scorning the stereotyped drivel of the press, and seeing in the " Dreams of Youth" rather a skilful echo of other men's thoughts, than original works, yet detected touches of real feeling, lines of exquisite melody, and images of daring felicity. The beauties they quoted; the errors were treated leniently. This is dangerous kindness, and has ruined many. A poet is naturally vain; and if vain when unapplauded, unap- preciated, what wonder if he grow arrogant on applause? He rushes into the world full of ardour and dreams of glory. His eyes are so intently fixed upon the star that shines upon the double- crested mount, Parnassus, that he over- looks the steep and perilous ascent — an ascent which must be climbed with toil, and cannot be cleared at a bound. He attempts to clear it at a bound : and is applauded for THE LITEEARY LION. 53 his rashness. Confirmed in his error by applause, and believing success easy, he takes no pains to achieve it. 'Tis the old story of the hare and the tortoise ! Ranthorpe was not only the supreme poet of albums, but the first waltzer in London. His aristocratic air, his haughty bearing, his beauty and success, soon made him a " Lion." This was his ruin. The poison was offered to him in a golden cup, and he greedily swallowed it. Without posi- tively regarding " moving in the first circles," as the ob- ject of his existence, he certainly regarded it as the best means to attain his object. He looked to patronage for success, and forgot the public for a coterie ! Wretched youth ! He had lost an author's courage to endure poverty and neglect, to live unnoticed, unflattered, unappreciated ; because he had lost that conception of his mission which makes martyrdom a glory. Poverty, then, for the first time appeared in all its terrors. It was not only poverty to him — it was failure. He had lived upon eight- pence a day, and had been rich upon it. He now lived as a prodigal, and dreaded the inevitable termination of his career. In the society he now frequented, he believed personal influ- ence the great requisite for success; and that his "powerful friends" would remove all the barriers which kept him from fortune and renown. He was daily getting more of these friends ; fresh houses were constantly being opened to him ; his position in society was daily becoming more prominent. But all his little fortune was squandered, and debts were fast increasing. At first the expenses inevitable upon hisposition wrung from him secret cries of anguish; and his delight at being invited to some country seat was considerably alloyed by the idea of what it would cost him. He soon got over this ; and the life of a man about town suited his 54 RANTHORPE. disposition so well that lie insensibly fell into it, and squan- dered his money with a poet's recklessness. " Ranthorpe, can I set you down ?" asked Sir Henry Varden, as he saw Percy about to withdraw. " Thank you," replied Percy, " if you are going now." And twining his arm within that of his " powerful friend," he descended the stately staircase with a proud feeling. " Sir Henry Varden's carriage stops the way," roared one of the servants. " Sir Henry is coming down," answered another. The next minute Ranthorpe was reclining against the easy-cushioned back of his friend's carriage, listening to his remarks with tolerable indifference, till Sir Henry said, " By the way, you made a fresh conquest to-night — Florence Wilmington. Take care ; she's a terrible flirt." " I am in no danger, I assure you." " Don't you admire her?" " Immensely. But my heart is elsewhere." " So much the better ; you may defy her, for she in- tends to lay siege to your heart, I'll swear, by the trium- phant smile with which she learned that you were to be at Rushfield Park during her stay there. By the way, I shall be going down the day after to-morrow, why can't you accompany me ?" " Let me see. The day after to-morrow — well, I see no obstacle — I certainly will avail myself of your offer." " That's settled then. But here we are at your door." The carriage stopped at a house in Dover-street, where Ranthorpe had apartments. Bidding Sir Henry adieu, and again engaging to accompany him to Rushfield Park, he opened the door with his latch key, and proceeded to his room. THE LITERARY LION. 55 " Only twelve," said he, looking at his watch. " I must do a little work, for to-morrow I breakfast out, and that will be another day lost." Another day lost ! He actually regretted it, and did not see that his whole life was a series of such losses. He opened his portfolio, and endeavoured to work at his tragedy. In vain. His brain was sluggish, or wasted itself on chimseras and air castles. When he attempted to write, the sound of music was in his ears, and the forms of fair women amidst brilliantly-lighted saloons were before his eyes distracting his attention. The real poetic fire that once ran through his veins, no longer gave vitality to his literary projects. He was consumed by a factitious excitement ; a hectic and unnatural heat burnt out his energies. Upwards of an hour he sat there 5 his head resting on his hand, and his pen vacantly drawing figures on his blotting paper. He vainly endeavoured to arouse the tragic inspiration by thinking of the necessity of soon finishing his play. But the very current of his thoughts was sufficient to destroy all genuine enthusiasm. I cannot better paint the situation of his mind than by indicating the current of his thoughts on this as on all other occasions when his play was the subject. He thought not of the passions and motives of his characters ; but of the worldly success of the piece. He saw, in his mind's eye, gigantic placards announcing that success. The words EVERY NIGHT and OVERFLOWING AUDIENCES for ever floated before him. He read imaginary reviews, wherein the critics welcomed his piece as a revival of the intellec- tual drama, and were sensitively alive to all its subtler beauties, as to all the splendour of its poetry. He held imaginary interviews with rival managers hungering after 56 RANTHOEPE. his next play. He imposed on them exorbitant terms. The money was already laid out : he would start a cab, and remove to the Albany. He should be able to continue the career of a man about town ; and be on a footing of equality with his acquaintances. Last and fatal symptom ! — he never thought of Isola as the sharer of this splendour ! THE POET OUT IN THE WORLD. 57 CHAPTER II. THE POET OUT IN THE WORLD. Se oggidi vivesse in terra Democrito, (perche di lagrimare Io non son vago, e pero taccio il nome D' Eraclito dolente,) or, se vivesse Era mortali, Democrito, per certo Ei si smascellerebbe della risa, Guardando le sciocchezze de' mortali. Chiabrera. How came the poet so transformed? This question, so naturally asked, and so difficult to an- swer, is important for the future interest in my hero. Let me beg, therefore, some attentive consideration of the causes which influenced him ; let me trust the reader will be as ready to detect the real force of such circumstances on such a nature, and by imagining himself in the same position, extenuate the errors of a youth. Poets are proverbially vain, impressionable, and luxu- rious; working by fits and starts, as the impulse moves them ; and hating all continued toil that is not forced upon them by some overmastering idea; very sensible to all the refinements of luxury; and very liable to act upon their hopes as if they were established certainties. 58 RANTHORPE. These general qualities Ranthorpe shared; and added thereto certain peculiarities of position and education which made his fall the easier. He had been bred amidst pinch- ing economy, with the constant dinning in his ears of maxims relative to the omnipotence of wealth; he had dined for weeks together on dry bread, to be able to pur- chase some envied book ; he had known all the miseries of being placed at the bottom of the social ladder; and now he dined off the rarities and delicacies of the season, and drank the costliest wines: things which had a sort of poetical magnificence to him, who had only dreamt of them in reveries. The fascinations which daily tempted his soul, and finished by subduing it, were fascinations to him. To those born to splendour — to those even who had known the ease and comfort of moderate incomes — the things which affected Ranthorpe would have had little attraction. But he had been poor, and was suddenly plunged into society where every one was rich ; he had been a miserable attorney s clerk at a salary often shillings a week, and was suddenly elevated to the society where his family — nay, where his former master — would not have been admitted on any sort of plea. It is necessary to remember this if one would understand the sort of intoxicated vanity which filled him, as he lounged into the large and splendid rooms, or rolled along in the luxu- rious equipages of his friends. The respect which footmen and hall porters (those incarnations of fat insolence) invari- ably paid the man — in whose face a little while ago they would have slammed the door — pleased him no less than the flattery of the drawing-room. The sensations which he felt as he was driven through the parks, seated beside some dandy, or some lady of fashion, it is impossible to describe ! THE POET OUT IN THE WOELD. 59 He gazed upon the foot passengers with a serene good nature. He was sure they must be envying him. Yet, he had no carriage — his genius alone gave him the seat he occupied ! And, then, the contrast between the manners of his new friends and those of the society he had been bred in! The low soft voice, the easy carriage, the constant cour- tesy of manner, even in uttering the greatest imperti- nences — the thousand indescribable nothings, effects of long habit and education, which distinguish well-bred people, compared with the loudness, blunt coarseness, undisguised impertinence, and inelegance of his former associates, made a very strong impression on him. He felt a childish delight in wearing yellow kid gloves in the street, on reflection that formerly he had seldom worn gloves at all. Every way his senses tempted him. What wonder he succumbed ! Was he not luxurious, and a mere boy? One had need be both, to be so intoxicated ! The society he mixed with flattered all his propensities. To please his friends he had no need of study — and he was idle. Their admiration gratified his vanity, and their wealth ministered to his luxury. This was the fruit of his lionism. People were pleased to have him at their parties; he amused them. But these very people would not have given him a sixpence ; could not have assisted him in the world of literature. The unfortunate poet had renounced the dream of being, like a second Petrarch, crowned in the Capitol, for that of being crowned in the drawing-room. And was not his love for Isola strong enough to save him ? Alas ! no. That, too, had not escaped the conta- minating influence of his ambition. At first he had re- 60 EANTHORPE. garded his elevation into a higher sphere of society as a triumph which he should one day call her to share. But, as the purity of his intentions became effaced by contact with impure ambition, he began to blush for her ! He felt that the social inferiority of his future wife would be an insuperable barrier to her admission into "circles," where he fancied he was admitted solely for his genius; not reflecting that handsome young men, of gentlemanly bearing, and living in a certain style, are always gladly invited to parties; and that he, in spite of his genius, would not have been admitted, had he not appeared in a decent coat and cravat. He struggled and sophisticated with himself; he would not own that his engagement was irksome, but he felt it deeply. He felt that, with Isola, he had nothing but a laborious and precarious existence to look forward to. " Are all the energies that pant within me to be frit- tered away," he would ask himself, "wasted in the despe- rate struggle for daily bread? Must I renounce my dreams ? Must I abjure the doctrines which I burn to teach, for those only that will sell ? Must I, too, write for the market? Horrible! horrible!" And the coxcomb, who had no convictions of his own, shuddered at the idea of writing for the popular wants. The adventurer, who had abjured his mission to maintain a wretched place in society, cheated himself with these high-sounding phrases. Thus must we ever cheat our- selves with the image of virtue, even when our baser impulses plunge us into vice. It is one of the peculiarities of imaginative natures, that they are so prompt to furnish the instruments of their own destruction. They are so dangerously fertile in excuses for their own acts ! They are so dangerously THE POET OUT IN THE WOKLD. 61 endowed with the faculty of turning their weaknesses into apparent calculations — their wishes into necessities, that, for an act which a well-principled but duller man could find no excuses, and would therefore shun with horror, they can invent such imperious justifications, such magni- ficent sophisms, as, instead of turning them aside in horror, urge them to pursue their course in triumph. Imagination creates idols, and then falls down to worship them. Ranthorpe was sincere, even in his falsehood. He was his own dupe. It should also be added, that he very seldom saw Isola; so that the evil influences of lionism were not counteracted by her presence. Other thoughts effaced her image from his heart. She was not often enough by his side effectually to renew the impression. He was unworthy of her; and this made him feel uneasy in her presence. He felt lowered before her. The sophisms which deluded him never withstood the limpid clearness of her good sense. Her intellect was too upright and truthful to accept the excuses which to him were valid. She did not tell him so ; but he felt it. He felt that the reasons which to him were irresistible, to her were not even plausible ; and he felt considerable anger at her not sharing his illusions. Men resent nothing more than contradiction on a point, which they themselves feel uneasy about. Truth may be disputed with impunity; a sophism can only be torn from out the mind with a violence that lacerates and embitters. 62 KANTHORPE. CHAPTER III. THE MEDICAL STUDENT. Son los estudiantes, madre, De muy mala condicion; Que al mirar una buena moza, Mas no estudian la leccion. Song of the SeviUian Students. Est enim leporum Disertus puer ac facetiarum. Catullus. The strawberry grows underneath the nettle, And wholesome berries thrive and ripen best Neighbour'd by fruit of baser quality: And so the prince obscured his contemplation Under the veil of wildness. Shakspeare. Isola was waiting for Ranthorpe bjc the Kensington Gate of Hyde Park. He had written to appoint this meeting, to say adieu before leaving town. As her duties were not very absorbing, she easily escaped, upon some plea of shopping, which Lady Theresa always ac- cepted ; and this was the only means she had of speaking with her lover. A weary half hour past the appointed time — which was quadrupled by her anxiety — had she waited, and THE MEDICAL STUDENT- 63 still no sign of her lover. She felt this neglect the more, not only because she knew he was master of his time, but also she had observed of late that his manner was greatly changed towards her. Ready enough to make excuses for him, she could not help feeling hurt. While musing on this, she suddenly heard quickened footsteps behind her, and, thinking it was her lover, turned round a beaming face of welcome. To her surprise and an- noyance, she met the smiling glance of a young gentle- man who was following her with strictly ^honourable intentions. Blushing at her mistake as much as at his insulting glance, she walked rapidly on. In an instant he was at her side; and addressed to her, between the puffs of his cigar, various jocular pleasantries touching her charms, and his very discriminating appreciation of them. Without daring to look up, she hastened her pace. " Don't hurry, my little divinity," said her tormentor, " and pray don't be alarmed. What can make you fly from such a lamb as I am?" and a voluminous column of smoke issued from his mouth. This lamb was Harry Cavendish, the medical student whom we introduced to the reader in the first chapter of this tale. His not very prepossessing exterior, joined to the easy impertinence of his address, so terrified poor Isola, that it was some time before she could summon courage to answer him. " Now, my inestimable bandbox, don't be modest," said he; il you're really very handsome." " I beg, sir, you will cease addressing me," she said, calmly; " I do not know you." " Exactly ! the very reason why you should remain quiet 64 RANTHORPE. till you do. Running away is not the readiest method of forming a lasting acquaintance; nor is silence the most satisfactory sort of eloquence. Restrain your paces, my angel, and listen. I am Hyacinth Napoleon Potts, heir to an earldom, fortune unknown. You are — " " Are you a gentleman ?' she inquired, with some effort. Harry puffed forth a column of smoke, and said, " Do I look like a tailor?" A tailor, be it observed, is the last degradation huma- nity can reach in the opinion of medical students; and it is probably owing to this contempt for their persons, that arises the indifference to notice their bills, which has been remarked as characteristic of the students. " I ask you, sir, if you are a gentleman?" she pursued, her voice regaining its accustomed power. " Not how you look, but how you feel. If you are one, you must see that your language is an insult, and an insult to a woman who cannot repel it !" Harry gazed at her for a moment incredulous; but though a "rip," he was a gentleman, and struck by the unmistakeable sincerity and dignity of her manner, and the earnestness of her tone, raised his hat respectfully, and replied, " Since you are serious, I can only apologise for my mistake.' 3 She bowed and passed on. He watched her till out of sight, and then resumed his promenade. This incident represents two phases of his character; and as he is about to occupy a large portion of this his- tory, I may as well pencil his prominent peculiarities. Harry Cavendish was, to most people, a mere medical student, of ebullient animal spirits, extreme good nature, THE MEDICAL STUDENT. 65 somewhat slang and dissipated. To those who knew him as did Ranthorpe (with whom he had recently become acquainted), he was a very different being; though the mixture of slang and sentiment in his composition was a perpetual puzzle. He was certainly not one of those who " wear their hearts upon their sleeves, in com- pliment externe." Nothing could be finer than his real nature ; but it was somewhat tarnished and distorted by his education, and by habits picked up from his fellow- students. The unpretending heroism which pulsed be- neath that extravagant exterior and dissipated habits — the delicacy and generosity of feeling which distinguished him, this tale will fully exhibit. He was really as roman- tic as he aspired to be rakish; he was not a " rough dia- mond," but never was diamond set in more extravagant bad taste. His virtues were his own ; his vices he owed to his position as a student. 66 KANTHORPE. CHAPTER IV. THE LOVERS' MEETING. How her heart beats ! Much like a partridge in a sparhawk's foot, That with a panting silence does lament The fate she cannot fly from. Massingek. Not unobserved did Harry quit his pursuit of Isola. Ranthorpe entered the park in time to see him raise his hat and depart. A feeling of jealousy first shot across his heart; but the respectful manner in which Harry had taken his leave, soon suggested the thought of his being a stranger. But when did he learn to know her; and how? These and other thoughts assailed him, as he walked rapidly towards Isola, whose agitation, when they met, puzzled and irritated him. He resolved not to begin upon the subject, that he might see whether she would refer to it. The air was warm, and lazily fanned their cheeks; the sky was cloudless, and dim with heat ; every thing with- out bespoke calmness and happiness — a painful contrast to the " world within" of these two lovers. THE lovers' meeting. 67 She met him with a palpitating heart — a heart wounded by neglect, yet fluttering with its love. He came hag- gard, despondent, and bitter. At the first glance of his wretchedness, she forgave him; her pangs were forgotten in her sympathy with his. After a few questions and answers — excuses mostly, — he could no longer restrain himself from asking how long she had known Harry Cavendish. She did not under- stand him. He then told her how he had seen Harry bid her adieu but a few minutes before. She related what had happened. Eanthorpe was silent. His brow was so gloomy that Isola dared not question him ; so in silence they walked on. He was suffering a martyrdom of vanity at the thought of his affianced bride's social position. "To be spoken to by every roue — to be treated as a milliner,'' he said to himself: " no more free from insult than the humblest of her sex; and perhaps my friends will recog- nise in my wife, the girl whom they have attempted to seduce \ n These thoughts irritated him. So keen was the expres- sion of pain upon his countenance, that Isola attributed his silence to physical suffering. She ventured timidly to ask him if he were ill. " Not precisely ill," he said, " but jaded. Late hours — heated rooms — dissipation," he was glad of the excuse, so continued: "moreover, the sad necessity of mixing in the ruinous frivolities of society." "Why mix in them?" she asked, with divine sim- plicity. But this home-thrust of natural logic pierced not the thick shield of vanity. She could not understand how men cling to follies which they see through, and which they f2 68 RANTHORPE. abuse in bitterness of spirit. As the drunkard in his sober moments curses wine, so could Ranthorpe curse society. " I must court it," be said, " altbougb I despise it. In London tbere is no success without friends. Every thing is got by interest. Patient merit must be content with its patience.'" 4< But can you not rely upon yourself?" said she. " No," replied he, " I cannot in England; elsewhere I might. In England, merit unheralded wins no victory; unpatronised, gains no attention : the soldiers win the battle, but the generals get the fame. If genius be struggling and starving, it may struggle and starve ; but if it seems to have no need of the world, the world is at its feet." "But, dearest, are you not already known? Your poems have been wonderfully successful ; and your society is sought by those you call influential; will they not assist you?" " Assist I" he said, bitterly. " Yes — yes — the assistance of friends — we know that !" " How bitter you are." " Bitter? Ay, lessons of adversity are bitter! Is it not bitter to find youthful dreams nothing but dreams? To find all your hopes unrealised, thoughts misunder- stood, friends false, and fame a mockery? Is it not bitter," he continued, grinding his teeth, " to see the courageous heart of man cowed into nothingness by the swart shadow of Respectability? Is it not bitter to see the tinsel of the gauds of life fixed on the pedestals where should stand the men of genius? Is it not bitter to dis- cover that the grand mistake in life is sincerity, and that one had better have every vice, and agree with the world ? than every virtue and differ with it ?" He was acting. Instinctively, but dimly, Isola felt it. THE lovers' meeting. 69 These phrases, however, affected her, not in themselves, but as indicative of the state of his mind. Oh ! how unlike had he become to that young poet, who on eight-pence a day had looked cheerily in the face of the world, and — " Strong in will To strive, to seek, to find, and not to yield*"* " The seal is taken off my eyes," he continued. " The veil is lifted which conceale4 the world ; I see it now in all its shivering nakedness — -for I am poor" " You have been poorer," she mildly suggested. " Oh ! Percy, do not despair. Think not so ill of the world : it is full of love and kindness, and will cherish its teacher." " Cherish? Yes: when I am dead! — They break the poet's heart; but ; oh ! good people! they honour his ashes. They throw the living man into prison ; or let him starve and rot. The dead man is placed in Westminster Abbey, under Latin inscriptions. The workhouse and a monu- ment — these are the poet's rewards !" " You exaggerate." " No; I speak but the truth. We authors live for hu- manity: if we fail, men laugh at us; if we succeed, they envy and malign us; if we differ from them, they trample on us !" She made no reply. Her truthful nature, however unsuspicious, could not accept his acting as natural feeling. She felt that there was something beneath his words and manner, though she knew not what. u I must maintain my footing in society," he said, shortly afterwards, " at the cost of the greatest privations. In England to seem poor is to be poor. And of all curses poverty is the worst." * Tennyson. 70 RANTHORPE. " You did not always think so." " Not when I was younger, less experienced. Besides," he added, and his voice faltered, "I had only then to brave it for myself. Now I have to think of you; and to think of you in want, is fearful to me." "And is it for me? — "she began, with a look of triumphant tenderness. "For you — for you," he, replied, "I would have all that wealth can bestow." "And what is this boasted all that money can be- stow?" she said, with enthusiasm, quite thrown off her suspicions by that one hint. " Money can furnish pa- laces, but it cannot fill the heart; it cannot purchase the supporting strength of love. It can make the brow glitter with jewels ; can it make the cheek glow with ruddy health? Can it chase the quivering from an anguished lip — a tear from the burning eye? Can it give health — repose' — content? Not one of these! Then what a. splendid braggart is this wealth !" He smiled mournfully at her enthusiasm, and said, " You think so because you are young." "I think so because I. love !" " Frankly, then, do you not dread poverty — if not for yourself, then at least for your children ?" " No. I have courage. Poverty is the least evil that can affect me. Love makes life's burdens light." " Truly ; but it is no shield against misfortunes." " Yes, Percy, against every thing. We have in this life all to struggle, and much to endure. Life's harmony must have its discords ; but as in music, pathos is tempered into pleasure by the pervading spirit of beauty, so are all life's sorrows tempered by love." THE LOVEKS' MEETING. 71 " Then should that love be very certain, " he said, fixedly. " Who doubts ours?" The calm trustingness with which she said this, made Percy wince; looking into her exquisite face he saw an irresistible commentary on her words. He was silenced. His silence awoke strange misgivings in her breast. " Surely, Percy, you have no doubts of me ?" "Listen, Isola; and listen calmly. We are now at a point in our lives when a false step will be irrecover- able. You are still very young, and may not know your own heart. Mind; I do not doubt your love. No ! But how often is a first love succeeded by a second, and a third — when wider experience — but, good heavens ! you are crying !" Crying ! her young heart was breaking ! One flash of light had revealed to her the abyss on the brink of which she was standing. "Isola, Isola! Do not weep. I was talking but of possibilities — things which may never be, but which must be looked in the face. Come, come; don't be foolish." " I foreboded it," she sobbed. "Foreboded what?" he asked, with some irritation. " That it would come to this. 5 ' "Come to what?" " You do not love me !" "Very well! very well! Directly I wish to talk reasonably, I am supposed to love you no more! Just like women ! But you will not hear me !" " I have heard too much already for mj peace. Our engagement alarms you." "It does — but on your account. You know how I have faced poverty; you know how little I care for the 72 KANTHORPE. world. But you do not know how hideous poverty is, when you see it brought upon another by your means ! I dread it, because it would destroy that which gives life its value — love ! Think of us, married, and poor. My temper is irritable — want sours the best of tempers. I should be cross to you — and then the necessity for in- cessant labour will keep me perpetually away from your side. Oh !" he exclaimed, passionately, "love never could survive that ! Love, which lives upon perpetual kindness, which is grace, beauty, happiness — could not survive the blistering curse of poverty." Isola continued weeping, but made no reply. " Then, to think of you in want — your beauty tarnished by suffering — your hands hardened by labour — and our children, so many silent reproaches on the parents who brought them into the world, without the means of feeding them when there. The thought is appalling !" She had checked her sobs, and dried her eyes. A sudden resolution had given her fortitude. In a calm, low, but unfaltering voice she said : " Percy, you are right. Our union would be cursed with poverty; and that, as you say, is the worst of ills; and I agree with you — when love is absent. I should be a burden to you. I should have blighted your prospects. Think no more of it. From this moment consider me as a sister." The agony which distorted her face belied the calmness of her manner. Percy felt it — and felt a sudden sense of humiliation, at having given one who loved him such pain. He could not continue the part he had assumed. He unsaid all that he had said; he protested that his fears were dissipated by her confidence; he conjured her to forget them — to think only of his undying love; to THE lovers' meeting. 73 hope in the future. He was passionate — eloquent — and in earnest. She was too willing to believe him ; and they parted with mutual vows and mutual protestations, that the future must bring them happiness, if they could await it courageously. Percy returned home in a state of great excitement. This soon wore off; and he almost repented of the termi- nation to their interview, when he came calmly to look at his condition. He did not know it, but the truth was, that his love for Isola was stifled by other feelings. It was a love which had its roots in the heart of the manful, struggling, dreamy poet ; but which was altogether out of place in the heart of an idle, intoxicated, feverish Lion ! 74 RANTHORPE. CHAPTER V. FIRST LESSONS OF ADVERSITY. Viendole asi D. Quijote le dijo: yo creo, Sancho, que todo este mal te viene de no ser armado caballero. Cekvantes. What a bridge Of glass I walk upon, over a river Of certain ruin, mine own weighty fears Cracking what should support me. Massingek. Voila, disais-je, un homme qui s'est donne le temps de penser avant d'ecrire; et moi, dans le plus difficile et le plus perilleux des arts, je me suis hate de produire presqu' avant que d'avoir pens£." Makmontel : Memoires. Ranthorpe had soon to learn the bitter lesson of how impotent were all his " powerful friends," to bring him one step nearer to the goal of his ambition. This announcement appeared in the papers : " On Monday next, the 15th, will be published, in one vol., 8vo, 10s., LYRICS, By Percy Ranthorpe, Esq., Author of the ' The Dreams of Youth.' Also, Dreams of Youth. Third Edition. * Exquisite imaginings.' — Morning Paper. FIRST LESSONS OF ADVERSITY. 15 * A volume of lofty ideality. Mr. Ranthorpe will take rank beside the most intellectual of our poets.' — Evening Paper." Those who read this announcement were naturally pre- pared for a volume of some pretensions. Reviews were awaited with impatience. It was a publication of some moment : it made or marred the poet. Authors do not sufficiently consider this. Instead of surpassing themselves in their second attempt, they gene- rally produce something inferior to their first. But if the second be really equal to the first, it will be thought infe- rior, because the public expect more. The "Lyrics" were confidently, carelessly written : pro- ducts of necessity, not of inspiration : written because the poet wanted to bring out another volume, not because feelings and thoughts within him struggled for utter- ance. With this inferiority in poetical value, the " Lyrics" had to contend against the severity of a watchful criticism, which the " Dreams of Youth " had disarmed. Those who were really influential — who had spared the youth and inexperience of his former volume — who had cheered him to fulfil the promise he had given, recommending* study and care — these men were all against him. Whe- ther some feeling of indignation at having been deceived, or of his not having taken their advice, mingled with their feelings of distaste at the carelessness and conceit exhibited in this volume, I will not say. Critics, like other men, resent their prophecies not being fulfilled. Certain it is, however, that this volume plainly told them that here also was another noble spirit ruined by success. The cutting severity of their reviews was heightened by the evident sorrow which accompanied their blame. 76 EANTHOEPE. One sentence from a review I may here transcribe, as falling in with the moral lesson meant to be conveyed by this tale: " Mr. Ranthorpe has mistaken the conditions of rapid "writing. The history of literature would convince him that no one ever produced excellent works in quick succession, who had not qualified himself by many years' study and reflection. He who has accumulated stores of experience may write rapidly, because the interval which must elapse before his materials are exhausted will itself be long enough for him to accumulate fresh mate- rials. The neglect of this obvious rule is the ruin of so many young men, who, after giving splendid promises, dwindle into insignificance: buds that never become flowers; fruits that are rotten before they are ripe." Not only were the serious critics severe ; but the ei small fry " were outrageous. The volume was received with universal condemnation. Eanthorpe suffered deeply, horribly. In vain did he endeavour to console himself by saying these criticisms were the productions of " envy" — in vain did he try to shut his eyes to the failure manifest before him. In vain did he exclaim, " these criticisms live only for the day; my poems will survive them." In vain did he sophisticate; there were not forty copies sold. What then became of his " powerful friends?" They had been his flatterers; more they could not be. "Powerful friends" could not give him genius, could not endow his verse with vitality and beauty. " Powerful friends" were not reviewers — " powerful friends" were not the public. Too many aspirants share this idle delusion about pow- erful friends for me not to insist upon it here. One FIRST LESSONS OF ADVERSITY. 77 illustration, striking and conclusive, will suffice. It is this. When noblemen, as they often do, enter the field of litera- ture, all the prestige of their names, all the influence of their " powerful connexions," can neither force their works upon the public, nor redeem them from ridicule and con- tempt. Hundreds of instances might be quoted : but the fact is sufficiently patent in itself. I would ask the as- pirant, therefore, this simple question: If" the great" can- not help one of themselves, what likelihood is there of their succeeding for a protege? But worse than all, " powerful friends" not only give no laws to the public, but absolutely receive its verdict; and what it refuses to accept as poetry, they regard as trash ! Ranthorpe was shorn of his glorious mane : he went into society, and found himself no longer a Lion ! He had to learn, not only the impotence of a coterie, but the serious truth that literature is not a field to sport in: that there, insolence and audacity are quickly crushed; and that a man is not, there, accepted for what he holds himself. He had to learn that puffery or luck, though it may give a momentary success, cannot sustain it: real ability alone does that. Sooner or later, the puffed-out wind-bag, floating so buoyantly aloft, is pricked by a pin, and then tumbles into the mire, never to rise again. A first success is jthe premier pas ; but in literature, it is not the premier pas qui coute. At any other time, this failure might have opened his eyes to his true position. But alas ! his eyes were dazzled, his head was turned, his heart was intoxicated. Love abetted vanity in deceiving him. Yes, love ! — He had fallen into the snares of the fasci- nating Florence Wilmington ; fallen slowly, unconsciously, but irretrievably. He had been much thrown with her 78 EANTHOEPE. during his stay at Rushfield Park. She had determined to captivate him, and succeeded. Since his return to town, he had been a frequent visitor at Lady "Wilming- ton's; and had drunk deeply of the poisoned goblet which the lily hand of Florence held up to him. THE TWO SISTERS. 79 CHAPTER VI. * THE TWO SISTERS. Sweet alluring eyes; a fair face made in despite of Venus, and a stately port in disdain of Juno ; a wit apt to conceive and quick to answer. What of this ? Though she have heavenly gifts of beauty, is she not earthly metal, flesh, and blood ? Lyly: Alexander and Campaspe. But the heaven-enfranchised poet Must have no exclusive home. He must feel and gladly show it, — Phantasy is made to roam : He must give his passions range, He must serve no single duty, But from Beauty pass to Beauty, Constant to a constant change. MONCKTON MlLNES. Florence Wilmington was a flirt — that is to say, she had great animal spirits, great vanity, and as a spoiled child, had never been taught to heed consequences. Ran- thorpe was handsome, celebrated, and lively; he was, therefore, a very proper flirting companion. She began to throw her spells around him at first innocently enough; but when she found that the impassioned poet was be- coming serious, and supposed her to be so, she thought of putting an end to the game. Just as she was about to 80 EANTHORPE. quit Rushfield Park, however, Sir Henry Varden warned her not to lose her heart to Ranthorpe, as his was engaged elsewhere, She was surprised; scrutinised Ranthorpe's manner closely; and jumped to the conclusion that he was an adventurer feigning love in hopes of making her a stepping-stone. Her vanity was piqued, and she resolved in secret to punish him, by making him really and desperately in love with her. Accordingly, on reach- ing London, she began a system of alternate coolness and tenderness, irritating and maddening the unhappy poet, by keeping him in a constant fever of suspense and doubt. Ranthorpe long endeavoured to hide from himself that he loved her. He juggled with his conscience; and tried to convince himself that it was only her lively manners, which, made him prefer dancing with or talking to her; and he thought of Isola, and tried to make her image drive that of Florence from his heart ; but in vain. He seldom saw Isola ; and when he did, he was always despondent. Florence, on the other hand, always either animated him beyond expression, or made him jealous and exasperated. Do what he would, Florence alone occupied his thoughts. While he was thus carried away by the fascina- tions of one sister, another sister was silently che- rishing a secret adoration for him. Fanny was very unlike Florence. Without being plain, yet her com- plexion was so sallow, and so lined with illness ard melancholy, that she seemed plain at first sight. Those who loved her, thought her beautiful. There was a deep quiet in her hazel eye, and a winning sweetness in her smile, which few could withstand. But she had no admirers among young men, she was so shy and reserved. Elderly THE TWO SISTEKS. 81 men, with whom she felt more at ease, pronounced her a paragon. In character she was as earnest as her sister was frivo- lous. Ill-health had greatly secluded her from society, and had thrown her upon the society of her books. In the solitudes of her library she had formed her heart and mind. The result was an excessive shyness, which veiled with coldness a warm, loving, and romantic nature. Her days were usually spent with her aunt, Lady Theresa. There she learned to know and value Isola, for whom she conceived a strong sisterly affection. Fanny understood Isola ; Isola understood her, and loved her. Between these two beings there never was a suspicion of "the difference of station." From the first, their relation towards each other had been divested of all con- ventionality. One secret alone was ever kept from each other — their mutual love for Ranthorpe. Yes, Fanny loved Ranthorpe, though she knew it not. He had been the first young man whom she could admire, who had vanquished her diffidence. A few interviews with him, in which they, unrestrained, poured forth all that was in their hearts, had completely subjugated her. In such natures love is of sudden growth ; and Ranthorpe, quite unconscious of the poison he was instilling, pleased at having a listener who so well appreciated him, sought her society whenever he could not engross that of Florence. As Fanny always saw him so very lively when with Florence, she did not suspect his attachment. Love to her was always serious. Ranthorpe had no suspicion of the love he inspired. In fact, he had eyes for no one but Florence — no thoughts for any one but for Florence, and she made him mise- G 82 RANTHOKPE. rable. Remorse for his treachery to Isola, and doubts respecting Florence, tortured him. At this juncture, Wynton one day called, and rinding him in a very excited state, began talking on his prospects. From several incoherent remarks, Wynton at length divined the real cause of his unusual excitement, and said abruptly to him : " Percy, you are in love with Florence Wilmington." He started, and coloured. "Do not deny it," continued Wynton; "look your malady boldly in the face, and I will help you to cure it." "Malady!— cure!" "Malady, yes — poison! There, go and blow your brains out at once. Do any thing but give up your heart to be gnawed by the cruellest of all vultures — a coquette." " You are raving, Wynton." "I am horribly serious. It is my friendship for you makes me so ; if my manner is a little wild, it is owing to recollections which .... Enough ! I tell you, in sober sadness, that your passion for Florence Wilmington, if you do not conquer it, will be the greatest misfortune that can befal you." " Do you know her?" "I? No. But I know ... I know what 2" suf- fered. Percy, I have never told you the history of my early life — and I rejoice at it; for now that history may serve as a warning to you, which you need. Will you listen to me calmly?" " Certainly. You pique my curiosity." " I shall not be long ; and you will see how nearly it concerns vou." WYNTON'S STORY. 83 CHAPTER VII. With that low cunning which in fools supplies, And amply too, the place of being wise, Which Nature, kind, indulgent parent, gave, To qualify the blockhead for a knave. Churchill. Thou art not fair; I view'd thee not till now — Thou art not kind; till now I knew thee not — And now the rain hath beaten off thy gilt, Thy worthless copper shows thee counterfeit. It grieves me not, to see how foul thou art; But mads me, that I ever thought thee fair. Arden of Faversham. " On leaving Cambridge," began Wynton, " I was, in common with, so many thousands of young men, a social anomaly, in a country where wealth or rank are the only passports to society. To the cultivation and education of a gentleman, I added the patrimony of a beggar, and the prospects of an adventurer. " My father was a clergyman, with a living of five hundred a-year, and nine children to absorb it. He pinched himself, to give me a college education. His pride lay in my talents ; and to give them a fair develop- G2 84 RANTHORPE. ment, he willingly deprived Himself of every comfort. I was sent to college. I gained there some distinctions ; and left it with the firm conviction that I was to make the for- tune of my family. " Filled with classic lore, and minute scholarship, I went to London, expecting to find employment and emolu- ment at once. You may measure the extent of my simplicity by that one fact. My dear father was, however, equally simple. London, the great mart for talent of every description, seemed merely necessary to visit, and * something would be sure to turn up.' He recalled all the illustrious names of men who had risen from nothing, — forgetting the thousands who had perished in the struggle I We repeated all the commonplaces about force of merit, and certainty of protection, and doubted not but that I should soon be sought out by the rich and powerful. " Thus confident, I went to London; I will not detain you with a description of the gradual breaking up of my illusions. You can fancy how soon it was that I dis- covered my social insignificance in that vast centre of talents; how soon I felt the insufficiency of a scholarship equalled by hundreds, and surpassed by scores; how soon I felt the meagreness of that knowledge which had hitherto been my boast — 'the knowledge of books— com- pared with that far deeper knowledge of life, with which I saw so many gifted. The young student with the classics at his fingers' ends, soon finds himself a child in compa- rison with the man who has lived, and reflected on his experience. "A knowledge of the sciences is comparatively easy, and may be acquired by very ordinary intellects. Though it requires a great intellect to originate profound views, a child may learn them when originated, and therefore 85 ordinary intellects can acquire considerable knowledge of the laws of nature; but a knowledge of life is the result of abundant experience drawn by a reflective mind. The labours of philosophers, extending through centuries of observation and experiment, are amassed in books. There the student may find them, question them, and having furnished himself with their results, begin the study of nature, rich in the experience of ages. Not so the student of mankind. He is almost like a philosopher who should set to work to observe phenomena, without having studied the results obtained by others. No amount of experience is stored up in books for him to consult. He must study the living subject. He must draw his own conclusions. The works of poets and moralists, indeed, contain the re- sults of great experience ; but unfortunately these are of little help; we are unable to appreciate them till we our- selves have discovered the same truths. A man shall read Shakspeare for thirty years, and at the end of that period shall detect truths of human nature, which escaped him before : and why ?- — because he himself, not having dis- covered them before, could not recognise them when he saw them written. From poets, we learn confirmations of our views — never the views of human nature themselves. "The knowledge of life is marvellously complex: its materials are drawn from past experience, present obser- vation, and prevision of the future. In youth, we are subject to deceptions as much from the boundless confi- dence of hope, as from the dazzling novelty of our im- pressions. We have no standard to test things by. "We have no experience to correct the rashness of our wishes, and the immaturity of our judgment. In youth, we can seldom judge men aright; for to judge men aright, we require to be arrived at that age when experience is 86 EANTHOEPE. weighty enough to balance the inventive nature of hope, and capable of analysing all impressions in the crucible of the understanding. In truth, a knowledge of men is always difficult and rarely certain, for men themselves are ever vacillating between new ideas and ancient prejudices; between their interests and passions. " In London I found myself a child. I might be great at Cambridge — honoured amongst silk gowns — immortal amongst gerunds — but in London I was a cypher. I could find no employment. I knew no one in the world of letters. I had done nothing to justify my pretensions. I was in that crowded city, anxious to get my bread by honest employment of my talents; and found thousands eager in the same pursuit. Ah ! how I longed to get an opening ! "I sent articles, tales, and poems to every magazine then published. I lived month after month upon the delicious cozenage of hope that one of the editors would at last have taste and judgment enough to recognise an unknown genius. You know enough of literature to judge what success I met with. I clung to my hopes tenaciously; but at length, in despair, I accepted a situation as private tutor in a rich Gloucestershire family. "To this, then, after a few months of glorious illusion and painful humiliation, had my boasted talents brought me ! To rust my energies, to waste the verdure of my life in a country house, instructing a heavy youth. "Yet my father never lost courage. He could not re- nounce his illusions. He could not admit his error of judgment. To have admitted it would have been to admit that he had wronged his other children by that error. He was forced to hope. I should distinguish myself even as a tutor ! Many a man had started from a wynton's stoky. 87 less favourable point ; with my talents I was sure to excite general admiration and respect. I did so. I was the * lion ' of the county. You know how little it would re- quire to be the wonder of a county, so that I need affect no modesty on that point. "I was a wit, a scholar, and a gentleman: so said the county. The clergymen declared my scholarship con- siderable; and in return I admired their sermons. The men thought me a wit and a philosopher ; and the women adored my verses. I was treated as an honoured guest, not as a tutor. My society was sought. I was intoxi- cated with my success, and began again to hope. " You may here, my dear Ranthorpe, trace the generic resemblance of our fates ; what you were in London so- ciety, I was in Gloucestershire. Both of us exalted beyond our merits, and both of us nourished in presumptuous thoughts. But now attend ! and you will see a still closer resemblance to your history. " The sister of my pupil was then eighteen; and I fell in love with her. It would be impossible for me to paint her portrait, because I have since seen how false was my view of her; and if I were to paint it according to my present knowledge, you would never believe in the sin- cerity of my affection for her. Let me therefore rather say that, to my inexperienced eyes, she was all that she affected to be, and as good as she was beautiful. " It was a mad thought, in such a country as England, for a poor tutor to aspire to the only daughter of a wealthy gentleman: but what will not youth and passion dare? What anomalies will they not reconcile in fiery imagination ? I loved Fanny, and I never doubted that her father would consent to our union, in time. I loved her to distrac- tion, and it was not long before I knew she had remarked 88 KANTHORPE. my passion. "Would she return it? That was rny per- plexity. " Return it she did, as far as in her nature lay. Flattered by the passion she had excited, it was evident to me that she returned it as much out of vanity as real affection ; but I was too enamoured, and too young to be scrupulous as to the means whereby I gained her love. She was deplorably ignorant; all education seemed useless with her; she had quickness, but could never learn. This want of intellect shocked me at first; but she seemed so angelical in dis- position, her sentiments were so noble, her sympathy so active, and her person so beautiful, that I soon forgot her poverty of brain. Alas! I loved her too well to detect the faults so glaring to others. " And then, in spite of her dulness of comprehension, she was the most consummate flatterer. Small as was her intellect, she seemed to have a more than animal quickness of instinct in detecting the foibles of those around her; and utterly destitute of convictions or earnestness, she could with equal facility adopt any opinion, any senti- ment, or any manner that would fit the opinion, sentiment, or manner of the person she was conversing with. She was like the chameleon reflecting the colour of every tree under which it reposes; she passed from the most con- tradictory ideas, and antagonistical sympathies, in the same evening — the same hour — with unparalleled ease. She flattered every body, and cared for none. For none — no, not even for me ; beyond the gratification of her vanity, which was pleased with the idea of the cleverest man in the county being her slave. I did not know this at that time — I did not suspect it. She was all enthusiasm, tenderness, and melancholy grace ; the tears would come into her eyes if I recited verses to her, or if I complained of a headache* wynton's story. 89 She seemed ' wrapt in adoration.' I believed all this ; the fumes of vanity intoxicated me — delirious presump- tion distorted my judgment. 4 ' Ah ! those were days of rapture and torture, such as I have never since experienced. Glorious visions of future happiness and greatness floated before my eyes. Intoxi- cating hopes and burning passions were the will-o' -wisps that lead my heart astray. And yet amidst these raptures were the poignant doubts which my social position gene- rated ; the fears that I was indulging in a dream from which I soon must waken ! " These fears became at last realities. A wealthy nobleman came to pass a few months at the house where I was tutor. He was evidently struck with Fanny, and she was as willing as usual to listen to his flatteries. The coquette ! how bitterly I cursed the vanity which could thus torture another's heart, as she knew she tortured mine. I reproached her with it. She wept — affected innocence — said it was only her manner — and that she meant nothing — vowed that she loved none but me. I was but too willing to believe her ! el All rapture now had fled, and grim despair seemed rooted in its place. Perpetual quarrels when alone ; per- petual jealousy when in company : this was my life. I could not be blinded to the fact that she encouraged her admirer ; but, at the same time, I was too young to un- derstand how she could reconcile it to her reiterated as- surances of undying affection for me. " The mystery became greater when the nobleman pro- posed, and was accepted ! "What ! said I to myself, actually accept him, and only last night she swore that I alone should ever have her love ! Great God ! is she a demon, or is she an idiot? 90 RANTHOEPE. "We had a violent altercation directly we were left alone. I heaped the bitterest reproaches upon her, which she received with forced playfulness. She persisted in vowing unalterable love for me ; and declared that she had only accepted his proposal out of policy — her father being so bent on it that she feared her refusal might have ruined our prospects. " ' But you will marry him?' I exclaimed. " ' I will marry none but you,' she replied; ' you have my heart, you alone shall have my hand.' "'But how? "'Leave all to me. You look incredulous? What motive can I have in deceiving you ?'■ " ( None,' I replied, sorrowfully; for I had often asked myself the same question, and could never devise an answer. " Her caresses and promises dispelled my fears during the rest of the interview, but I became sombre and scep- tical immediately afterwards. I was ignorant enough of human life and human motives ; my ideas of them had been gathered from poetry and novels (those falsifiers of nature, the more pernicious because they pretend to truth), and I had familiarised myself with romantic adventures, the audacity of love, and the escapes t>f brides from de- tested unions even at the foot of the altar. I did not see how these were to operate in my favour; but Fanny seemed so confident that I trusted blindly to her inge- nuity. " Thus fretful and sophisticating, I passed the time al- lowed for the marriage preparations. I saw her trousseau, sometimes with a grim irony, sometimes with a sad fore- boding, according to the view I took of the probability of her being true or false to me. At length the last week arrived, and Fanny seemed as gay and bustling as any wynton's story. 91 bride could be. I began to suspect that she was de- ceiving me, and would continue to do so to the very day. The thrilling horror of this thought almost maddened me. I rushed forth into the park and wandered distractedly about. Desperate thoughts, and violent plans, crossed and recrossed my brain; and I returned to the house so exhausted with emotion, that they all remarked my sickly appearance. I pleaded illness, and went up to my own room, where I dined by myself. That evening the whole party were going to a ball, given by one of their neigh- bours. I rejoiced in the idea of being left alone. " To quench the burning flame of jealousy which was devouring me — to deaden the conviction that I had wasted myself on a coquette — to stupify the wounded pride re- volting at the thought of my having been made a dupe — I drank largely of the generous claret. I remember with horrible distinctness my sensations : they were a mixture of keen anguish and heavy insensibility ; of vivid conception and sottish brutality ; the external universe seemed press- ing upon me with an intolerable weight ; and the vigorous mind seemed struggling to free itself from the oppression. I was not drunk, but besotted. Gross and brutal feelings seemed urging me to some desperate act. " About half-past ten I rose from my seat and left my room. The house was empty, and I wandered vacantly through the rooms, a sort of life-in-death. I know not from what motive, but I soon found myself in Fanny's bed- room. This seemed to have a sort of quieting influence over me ; my ideas became more vivid and less fantastic, less con- fused. It was her bed-room! I had never crossed the threshold before, and now I was seated in her very chair; , turning over her combs and brushes, her trinkets, and 92 EANTHORPE. scent bottles ; touching the counterpane of her bed ; kiss- ing the curtains ; looking in her glass ; and picturing her also in the room ! " While thus yielding to delicious reveries I heard foot- steps approaching. Alarmed at the idea of being detected there, I hid myself behind the ample curtains of the bed. The house-maid entered, finished her work without de- tecting me, and left the room. " This put strange thoughts into my head. I examined the position of the bed and the amplitude of the curtains, and from every part of the room viewed the capabilities of the hiding-place ; and having satisfied myself on that score, I determined to await Fanny's arrival. " * I will endure this suspense no longer,' said I, ' this night shall decide my fate.' " The time dragged heavily onwards after this resolution ; but I grew more and more confirmed in it, as the time for its execution approached. The fumes of the wine had not yet gone off, but they did not stupify me so much as they had done. My head seemed as if bound with a wreath of burning iron ; the blood burnt along my veins ; a quenchless thirst scorched my palate ; and a dull, dogged sense of resolution filled my mind. When the party re- turned home, I felt capable of any crime. a Fanny came up to bed, chattering incessantly to her obsequious maid. I could not see her, but I recognised in her voice and manner an excitement produced by the flatteries and frivolities she had been enjoying. I heard her tell her maid all the persons she had danced with, all the dresses she had admired, or laughed at, and all the in- anities of which balls are composed. " At length, her maid finished her hair, placed every wynton's stoey. 93 tiling ready, and departed. I no sooner heard the door shut, than I peeped cautiously out, and saw Fanny turn- ing over some letters — they were mine ! " In spite of my half-intoxication, and the dogged reso- lution it inspired in me, I had not courage to step forward; a fire burnt up my veins, but a cold perspiration covered my body. I watched in breathless silence, till my situation became insupportable, and I determined to venture forth. The house was silent, every one was abed, and, probably, after the fatigue, sound asleep ; so I murmured, ' Fanny,' in a gentle tone. She started ; and again pronouncing her name, with a caution to her not to be frightened, I stepped forth. " She was surprised, terrified, and indignant ; and ordered me to quit the room instantly, or she would alarm the house. " ' Alarm the house !' I replied, brutally, ' and let your future husband know why I am here. — This is folly ! Let us be calm and rational. You, alone, can suffer from any discovery. You dare not alarm the house : you know you dare not.' " ' That makes you courageous.' " ' No; it makes me resolved. Therefore, sit quiet, and listen to me. I am to be trifled with no longer. Tell me you do not love me, and then — ' " c What then?' she said, haughtily. " ' "Why, I may kill you for your falsehood ! Do not be terrified — I know not what I am saying ; but release me from this agony of suspense ; do you love me V " ' You know I do, 5 she answered, reproachfully. " ' How can I know it, when I see the preparations for your marriage with another ? — preparations, which you 94 EANTHOEPE. take as much, apparent delight in as the happiest of brides. You do not answer ? — Beware, oh ! beware Y " ' You terrify me so that I have a good mind to punish you, by not telling you my object in appearing a happy bride/ " I was softened in an instant. I wanted an excuse for her, and she was going to furnish it. I entreated her to tell me what she meant. « « Why, as you know, my father would take no denial in private. He wishes the match; and, in his house, his wish is law. But he is very anxious to make a good figure in the eye of the world. Now, at the wedding, there will be a large assembly of our relations and friends, and if before them all I declare that my affections are another's, my father will not dare to force me ; and to pre- vent his forcing me, I intend at the altar saying, ' No.' This will create grand scandal; but the magnitude of it will be our safety. My hand will never be forced, when they see how determined I am.' " ' But why not elope ?' " ' For your sake. I am under age. You would be accused of abduction. No ; my father shall give me to you.' " I allowed myself to be convinced; and kissing her on the eyes, I crept to my own room. " The marriage bells were pealing; the day was bright and sunny. The bells seemed to mock me : I thought I could distinguish voices in them. The day was hideously glaring : I thought it also a mockery of my inward gloom. I had horrible misgivings. Fanny's plan was wild and romantic. I had read of such things, and they seemed probable ; but when the plan was about to be acted, it seemed 95 impossible. Obedient to her wish, I did not attend the cere- mony. But I could not forbear skulking about the outside of the church, with anxious ears awaiting some confusion to betoken an interruption of the ceremony. I expected every minute to see the doors open and people rush out. " All was silent: painfully silent. " I crept into the church, unable to endure the suspense, and felt the world turn giddily round me, as I saw the bridegroom in the act of passing the ring on the finger of his radiant bride. I staggered from the church. The soft breeze revived me for an instant. I wandered on, brooding thoughts of vengeance. I felt a sudden sickness and a film overspread my eyes. I sank senseless on the grass. " When I recovered, the sun was pouring his intolerable rays upon me ; the birds were twittering in the trees ; the blue sky above me was dotted with lazy clouds. For a moment I knew not where I was. " The pealing bells awakened me to consciousness. " I returned home as the ' happy pair' drove from the door, upon their marriage tour. The drama had ended; my deception was complete; and Fanny became Lady Wilmington" u Lady Wilmington !" exclaimed the astonished Kan- thorpe. " Yes, Lady Wilmington," bitterly repeated Wynton. " And now you see the closeness of our fates. What Fanny was, her daughter is — a coquette. She plays with you, as her mother played with me. You may fancy she loves you; perhaps she does, but that will not prevent her breaking your heart, for her love will not be a feather's weight upon her conscience !" There was a pause, during which each was absorbed in 96 EANTHOKPE. his thoughts and recollections. Wynton was moved with the ripping open of old wounds ; and Ranthorpe was asto- nished at the wondrous history, and its connexion with his own. " You have made me sadder," said he, " from the suf- ferings you have endured, and from the hideous picture you have drawn of a woman whom I always thought a negative kind of being, without force of character enough to be bad — much less to be the demon you have drawn." " Yet she is not a demon," replied Wynton; " believe me she is a woman, and a not uncommon woman. When I was your age I thought as you do. Experience, and long studies of moral anatomy, have convinced me of my error. Calm now, I can read her character in its true light. Shall I read it aloud ?" " Do so — but no paradoxes I beg !" " None that I can help. Well, then, Fanny was simply and truly a victim of intense egotism with no intellect to direct it ; weak, vacillating, and unprincipled, she had no malignity, she had not force of character for any villany that did not spring from the negative vice of want of prin- ciple. Self was her only consideration, and she was reck- less what she sacrificed to it. She was gratified by my love in many ways. By her vanity she lived ; to gratify it was, therefore, to give her a vivid feeling of her ex- istence. Hence her delight in my passion. " She could not break off our intercourse when once her future husband had dazzled her with the prospect of a wealthy e establishment.' I say she could not, and for these reasons : " She would never sacrifice a gratification merely at the expense of another's suffering; and my love was a gratifi- cation, and I was easily deceived. wynton's stokt. 97 " She could not bear to lie thought ill of by any person, no matter by whom ; it tortured her. She lived as I said by her vanity, and this vanity was inordinate; the praise of the meanest was food to her; and hence the pliancy with which she suited herself to every body's way of thinking. " But if to be thought ill of, even by a servant, was a pang to her, what would she have suffered if the man who then adored her were to turn his adoration to contempt? How much pleasanter to prolong that adoration till the last minute ! " As she never for an instant contemplated becoming my wife, she knew that I must detect her some day; all her art was required to delay that moment until she should see me no more. " Now, in supposing that I have read aright the motives of her conduct — stripped of the palliations and sophistica- tions of her own conscience — we have, as a result, the por- trait of a very unprincipled ivoman, sacrificing every thing to her intense egotism; but no demon. A demon, in our conception the incarnation of malignity, is not so odious as the incarnation of egotism. Malignity is respect- able in comparison : there is force and energy in it ; there is a defiance, and a power which extorts sympathy from us. As the highwayman is less contemptible than the pick- pocket, so is malignity less odious than egotism. The cruelty of egotism is not less than that of pure malignity ; but the motive is more contemptible. Satan is grand, terrible, sublime; Iago is utterly despicable. Moloch is loveable in comparison with Blifil. "Fanny was no demon, but an egotist; this explains her actions. Wherever you see intense egotism, you see more or less want of moral principle ; for whatever principle the H 98 RANTHORPE. egotist exhibits, is only such as will keep him from the bar of justice or of public opinion. His real standard is not a moral, but a purely selfish one. Wherever you see a want of moral principle arising from a weakness of character (more than from defiance of society, or misdirected energy), there you will be sure to find a being capable of acts similar to those of the miserable girl we speak of. "Now," added Wynton, "tell me whether my story has been of any use to you, Percy?" " It has, indeed," said Ranthorpe, mournfully; "you have saved me from destruction." POOR ISOLA. 99 CHAPTER VIII. POOR ISOLA. Je pense en vous et au fallacieux Enfant Amour, qui par trop sottement A fait mon ccsur aymer trop haultement; Si haultement helas ! que de ma peine N'ose esperer un brin d'allegement. Clement Marot. You held your course without remorse To make him trust his modest worth, And last you fixed a vacant stare, And slew him with your noble birth. Tennyson. My ears Receive, in hearing this, all deadly charms, Powerful to make men wretched. Massinger. Wynton's story had certainly made Ranthorpe very unhappy; but it had not cured him, it had not convinced him. This is one of the sad conditions of life, that ex- perience is not transmissible. No man can learn from the sufferings of another : he must suffer himself; each must bear his own burden. The reader will not wonder, therefore, if, the first time h2 LOFC 100 RANTHORPE. Ranthorpe saw Florence, after Wynton had distressed him with his story/all the doubts which that story had aroused were at once dispelled. One quadrille, one tender smile, sufficed to make him scorn the idea of Florence being at all like her mother. The more he thought of Lady Wilmington, and compared her with Florence, the more was he struck with the differences; and they were really many and im- portant. Lover like, he only saw the best side of his mis- tress — he only perceived the differences between her and her mother, without also noting the resemblances. In truth, he was in such an unhealthy state of irritation, intoxication, piqued will, and fascinated senses, that his mind could not have fairly apprehended the truth, how- ever clearly it might have been placed before him. He yielded himself up to the charm of being deceived, and would have thanked no one for undeceiving him. Wynton grieved to see the little influence he had ex- ercised; reproached him gently with it; but Ranthorpe had only one answer — Florence is not at all like her mother. Wynton rather angrily retorted: "Declare your love, then, and try her." " I will," was the haughty reply. The next day he was alone in the drawing-room with Florence. " You look ill," she said, with feigned anxiety. " I am unhappy." " Oh, if it's only that," she said, relapsing into her usual playful manner, " I have no pity Poets, you know, must be unhappy, to make the world believe in their poems." " That, perhaps, is the reason," he said, somewhat bitterly, "why the world ill-treats poets. It fears we POOR ISOLA. 101 may not liave cause enough to weep, and so heaps scorn, envy, and neglect upon our sorrowing heads. We are the singing birds whose eyes men put out, to give more touching plaintiveness to our song." " Ah ga! vous allez done f aire le Byron?" " I am serious." " What, you complain of the world ?" " I complain of the one." "Oh, then there is one I thought so ! Now you must make me your confidante She must be very charming, to have captivated you; but still more hard- hearted to have been cruel to you. Voyons, Monsieur le poke Who is la belle perfide f " Do you not know her ?" he asked. " I cannot guess," she answered, with an air of utter unsuspiciousness. " Can you not read the feelings written o'er the face? Can you mistake the eyes ?" No one could have mistaken his eyes, or the tone of his voice, or his manner; but the persistent blindness of a coquette is one of the peculiarities of the race. Florence replied — " Who could not mistake eyes? They are such deceit- ful things ! Then, too, one never knows when you poets are in earnest — " "Are there not," he replied, passionately, "looks which utter what the faltering lips recoil from ? Are there not tones which pierce the husk of conversation, giving a meaning to unmeaning words? Is there not the fret — the anxiety — the fever — the jealousy — the flushed eheek and eager eye, to mark the true love from the feigned ?" " Yes — but you men ! Really you are such creatures I" 102 RANTHOEPE. " Dare I proceed ?" " Assez — brisons la-dessus! You have been eloquent enough ; — and eloquence is dangerous." " You — understand me — then ?" " Perhaps — " Then, feeling that she had got to the uttermost limit, and that it was necessary to change the subject before it went further, she added, carelessly, 4 '-Have you seen the 'Puritani?' Delicious, isn't it? Bellini is such a love of a composer !" " Pray do not trifle with me. Answer me, dear Miss Wilmington; do you — do you understand me?" " Allons, pas de sentiment! — T hate it. — Don't be thea- trical, mio caro poeta. Let us change the subject." Ranthorpe, stung by her manner, passionately replied, "Change the subject — I cannot change it! It haunts me like a dream. — It is all I ever think of. — My exist- ence is bound up in it !" "You forget yourself," she answered, rather haugh- tily ; — somewhat uneasy at the declaration she had drawn forth. At this moment Isola was coming up the stairs, to seek a book in the drawing-room for Lady Theresa; and hearing Ranthorpe's voice, in tones she knew too well, her footsteps were arrested at the threshold, and unconsciously she became a listener. " Forget myself I" replied he, bitterly. " Yes — that is the word — that is my reward ! I cannot help it ! — My heart is at your feet, trample on it, Florence — trample on it, and crush out every feeling — or breathe into it the breath of new and vigorous life ! Florence, I love you !" "Mr. Ranthorpe!" she exclaimed, rising with feigned astonishment. " I love you — love you !" he fiercely reiterated. POOR ISOLA. 103 A low and stifled scream startled them both. It was followed by a heavy fall on the ground. They looked, and beheld the senseless form of the broken-hearted Isola. "OGod! OGod! O God!" exclaimed Ranthorpe, hiding his face between his hands, agonised at the sight of his wrong. " Miss Churchill has fainted — ring the bell," said Flo- rence. " Fainted I" he replied, in a hollow tone — " She is dead ! dead — and I have killed her ! — Said I not that my heart was at your feet? There it is, 5 ' pointing to Isola, "there ! I have sacrificed her to my mad passion — I have filled my soul with horror and remorse to gain a smile from you.-— And now, here, over her corpse — here, at my feet, this victim of my love — here, with her between us, do I repeat I I love youl' — what is your answer? — You are silent! You love me not ! — You have played with me ! — Behold, at your feet, your deed ! — O God ! O God I" He rushed out of the house; wandering through the streets, with the prostrate form of his once-loved Isola ever before his eyes, goading him to madness. He returned home weakened, and almost deadened to external impressions, while internally the Eumenides goaded him to despair. His first act was to write to Isola, imploring forgiveness; — telling her that the last chord that had bound him to a false ambition was snapped; — and that he had seen his error. His messenger returned with the information that Miss Churchill had left Lady Theresa, and no one knew whither she had gone ! BOOK III. THE UNSUCCESSFUL AUTHOR. 0, my blessing! I feel a hand of mercy lift me up Out of a world of waters, and now sets me Upon a mountain, where the sun plays most To cheer my heart, even as it dries my limbs. Thomas Middleton. — No Wit like a Woman', THE ARISTOCRACY OF INTELLECT. 107 CHAPTER I. THE ARISTOCRACY OF INTELLECT. When there is no difference in men's worths, Titles are jests. Beaumont and Fletcher. Jung und Alte, Gross und Klein, Grasslickes Gelichter! Niemand will ein Schuster seyn, Jedermann ein Dichter! Gothe. For there is no power on earth which setteth up a throne in the spirits and souls of men, and in their cogitations, imaginations, opinions, and beliefs, but knowledge and learning. Bacon. Ranthorpe stumbled at the threshold of his career. His mistake was fatal, though common. He misconceived his own position in the world : he belonged by nature to one aristocracy, and he aspired to the other ; born a member of the great aristocracy of intellect, he miscon- ceived his rank, and yearned for recognition and fellowship in the great aristocracy of birth. Let me explain. Birth was in antique times the ensign of command. Those only who belonged to the aristocracy were free. 108 EANTHOEPE. To be born under a certain condition was to be a thing \ not a man ; it was to be a slave, progenitor of slaves ; a slave, with no hope of freedom, but from the master's caprice or avarice. To be a man— to enjoy man's impe- rious will and proud prerogatives — it was necessary to be born free. Birth was then indeed glorious ; no misfortune could obscure it ; no rivalry could equal it ; without it, men were the property, the goods of another. To be a slave was to be branded, even in enfranchisement, with con- tempt : the slave might be freed, but he could not with his servitude shake off the stigma of his birth. He might, in corrupt ages, become the emperor of the world — but not even the imperial purple could hide the original stain ; and a Diocletian, a Pertinax, a Probus, or a Vitellius, never escaped that bitter reproach. Birth was all-important. A man might have senses, apprehensions, affections, — but he was a thing, unless he belonged to the privileged few. No wonder that the pride and exclusiveness of the few became outrageous ! Things have changed since then. Christianity, by its institutions, no less than by its doctrines, abolished the great distinction of races, noble and servile. Slavery, which to the wisest and humanest of the ancients seemed a necessary condition of society, became abolished. In- dustry, in the hands of these enfranchised slaves, became a power. The people was created — society was changed. Yet in those antique times, side by side with this most haughty aristocracy of birth, arose the haughty aristocracy of mind. Like its rival, this, too, was essentially oligar- chical, tyrannical, and, like it, was also scrupulous to keep the profane vulgar from its circle. Philosophy was con- fined to a few teachers and their disciples ; and to keep THE ARISTOCRACY OP INTELLECT. 109 its secrets from the world, the Egyptian priests invented their hieroglyphics, symbolical instructions, and myste- rious ceremonies. So long as mind was the vicegerent of religion, so long was its power, even over birth, acknowledged ; but when its office changed — extended — then its power fell. This power it is fast regaining. Mind holds the supremacy once held by rank, though not so exclusively. Mind, so jealous when it first felt its power, that it em- ployed every machination to keep that power in the hands of the few, has now, because for the first time it truly recognises its own mission, become, instead of a waxen taper shining in a cell, a glorious sun giving the whole world light. The learned languages are no longer written ; the living speech utters the living thought; and cheap literature, in some of its myriad channels, conveys that thought even to the poorest cottage. Learning no longer rules supreme, but must give place to knowledge : the owl has become an eagle ! The aristocracy of birth is not the figment certain de- mocrats proclaim. A thorough-bred hunter is not a hack. The members of a jealous aristocracy preserve their social preponderance, not only by their fortunes, but also by the purity of their race. They have purer blood — more beau- tiful persons — greater refinement of manner. These things have their influence, because they are qualities, not acci- dents. Your true nobleman remains such, through every misfortune. " Licet superbus ambules pecunia, Fortuna non mutat genus." Strip your banker-lord of his wealth — and where is his no- bility? 110 EANTHORPE. But the aristocracy of birth is no longer the power which it was formerly. The real government lies in Intelligence. " Le Roi regne et ne gouverne pas" To Intelligence both Rank and Wealth must bend the knee — and do bend it. 61 Si on annongait M. de Montmorency et M. de Balzac dans un salon/' says Jules Janin " on regar derail M. de Balzac." Who occupies the foremost position in the world's eye — the lord or the admired author ? While the most potent Marquis of Fiddle-faddle, with all his untold wealth and line of ancestry, " dies and makes no sign " — the house, the room where the author lived, the chair wherein he sat, or the desk on which he wrote, are treasured as national relics unto which thousands of pious pilgrims make journeys from year to year; and libraries are full of " Lives," " Memoirs," correspondence, anec- dotes, and criticisms of this one man ; no mention being made of my Lord Marquis. The haughty Due de St. Simon could say of Voltaire, " that is the son of my father's notary;" yet that notary's son was the most potent man in all France — in all that France had produced for the century; and in his eighty-fourth year, on his visit to the capital, was received like some Julius Csesar in his tri- umph. Rousseau was the son of a watchmaker — D'Alem- bert was picked up in the streets — Burns followed the plough. Had these men no nobility? Were they not of the apio-reia ? Whatever future changes may produce, there are at the present day two potent aristocracies, both swarming with presumptuous parvenus, despicable and despised : par- venus (let it never be forgotten) of intelligence as well as of station : men who aspire to qualities they have no claim to : eunuchs of ambition ! Society is brimful of absurdities, which no ridicule will THE ARISTOCRACY OF INTELLECT. Ill mvither; and of this kind is the absurdity of the mem- bers of one aristocracy consenting to become parvenus in the other: authors degrading themselves into par- venus of station, and lords descending into parvenus of intelligence — this indeed is a misconception sometimes fatal; always ludicrous. Lords, consent to be lords; and, before attempting to be authors, rigidly scrutinise your claims and title deeds ! You are proud of your own blazonry, and ridicule the pretensions of the parvenu ; but you become equally ridiculous when aiming after the blazonry of mental aristocracy — the titles of books ; unless, indeed, you have the gift of genius to secure your position. Authors, consent to be authors; and before attempting to " move in the first circles," unless your position call you there, rigidly scrutinise what it is you want : what is your aim, and whether this society and its demands be compatible with the mission of your lives. Do not de- grade yourselves by abdication of a rightful throne for a baffled attempt at usurpation of a foreign one. Either there is dignity in intellectual rank, or there is not : if there is, no other rank is needed ; if there is not, no other rank can give it ; for dignity is not an accident, but a quality. 112 RANTHORPE. CHAPTER II. PRIEZ POUR LUI. Pull little knowest thou that hast not tried, What hell it is in suing long to bide; To lose good days that might be better spent; To waste long nights in pensive discontent; To speed to-day, to be put back to-morrow; To feed on hope; to pine with fear and sorrow; To fret thy soul with crosses and with cares ; To eat thy heart through comfortless despairs ; To fawn, to crouch, to wait, to ride, to ronne, To speed, to give, to want, to be undonne. Spenser. Oui, mon ami, le veritable et la plus digne ressource d'un homme de lettres est en lui-meme et dans ses talents. Voltaire. A PRISON stared Ranthorpe in the face when he awoke to the stern realities of life. Duns beset his doors, and made him deeply feel the humiliation of his lot. He had abjured his pilgrim's scrip and staff, and now was stum- bling over the path to ruin. One bitter lesson he had learnt: — to trust only to himself. Bitter, but beneficial; for it served to bring his mind back again to the right disposition, and served to unveil to him the utter folly of his previous hopes. PKIEZ POUK LUI. 113 In his rage lie first cursed the world and its falsehoods, — he pictured mankind in all the despicable colours of re- sentment; he scorned them with a scorn of rash-judging youth, and hated them with the hatred of one just deceived. All this was beneficial, for it threw him upon himself; and made him look only to himself, and his profession, for his support and glory. He learnt the feeling of majestic self-reliance ; — too often but a pitiable self-reference ! And yet, in moments of despair, this feeling of self- reliance seemed to him a mockery, and the world a huge distorted farce. Self-reliance!— w^hat could come of it? Was he not without friends — without money — without work ? Would superb self-reliance procure him the meanest necessaries? The book of life had lain open before him, and on it3 fair pages he had scrawled the characters of folly and misery; were it not better at once to throw that book into the flames, than tear those blotted pages out? His situation was indeed pitiable ; and yet he could do nothing to better it. He mused and mused over his past folly, and his blighted prospects ; but he could only muse : his thoughts were directed to the past and future. The truth is, he was unfitted for work ; his previous habits and his present melancholy equally interposed. The life of an author, when he sets himself to work, must be placid and contemplative; he who has to live in an ideal world, should be tranquil as regards the real. He should know the real world — he should have suffered in it — and experienced all its phases, grave and gay, rich and poor; but this experience, which is to be the fountain of his inspiration, must not mingle with the current. The stream flows bright and limpid over its sandy bed ; but if you disturb that bed, the sand mixes with the water, I 114 EANTHOEPE. making it thick and undrinkable. Experience is the bed over which must flow the lucent stream of poetry. The poet can no more write without having suffered and thought, than the bird can fly in an exhausted air- pump. He must learn the chords of the everlasting harp, before he can draw sweet music from it. But he cannot play while he is learning — he cannot write while he is suffering — he cannot sing while his heart is bleeding. If he attempt it, he will but utter incoherent sobs. He must wait until that suffering has passed into memory- There it will work, fortifying the soul with its examples, not tearing it with thorns. He must wait till suffer- ing has become spiritualised, by losing every portion of the sensuous pain, before he can transmute it into poetry: because in the divine world of art all is ideal, even tears; and in its battles no real blood flows from the wounded soldier, but celestial ichor from the wounded god. EXPIATION. 115 CHAPTER IIL EXPIATION. Sans avenir, riche de mon printemps, Leste et joyeux, je montais six etages, Dans un grenier qu'on est bien a vingt ans. Beranger. Les larmes troublent la vue. Alfred de Vignf. Juste ciel! tout mon sang dans mes veines se glace! O trouble! 6 desespoir! 6 deplorable race! Eacine. Ranthorpe renounced society. The friends whom he had courted, to whom he looked for patronage and success, were now regarded by him in their true light. He saw that genius, however great, has nothing in common with the drawing-room, unless it dwell in the mind of a man bred up in drawing-rooms; he began to heartily de- spise the people by whom he had a little while ago aspired to be treated as an equal; he rushed into the other ex- treme, and thought society synonymous with frivolity. Florence he cursed in the bitterness of his heart, though he had really no one but himself to blame; he was furious at her treatment of him ; filled with remorse at his treat- ment of Isola. He was as one awakened from a debauch, whose brain, no longer troubled with the fumes of wine, clearly apprehends the folly of his acts. 12 116 RANTHORPE. But amongst his old friends he found true friendship — ready sympathy. Wynton sincerely felt for him ; he had cause to do so. Joyce was foremost in his offers of ser- vices, and soon procured him several means of lucrative employment; he was, however, too much depressed to write. Harry Cavendish instantly remembered that his " rooms" were too large for him; and that, having a spare bed-room, it would be both pleasant and economical if Eanthorpe would lodge with him. This offer was ac- cepted the more joyfully because Ranthorpe felt the want of Harry's liveliness as a preservative against despair. Harry's " rooms 1 ' were not illustrious for their elegance. They consisted of a first floor in Hans Place, Sloane Street, comprising a drawing-room, and two bed rooms; but, although Hans Place is dull and murky enough, No. 7 was a lively house — the cage might be dark, the birds within sang merrily. The furniture of the drawing-room was not exactly in accordance with Ranthorpe's newly-awakened luxurious taste, but his position prevented him from fastidiousness. One stout mahogany table covered with a very dingy- green cloth, variegated with figures of gentlemen in hunt- ing costumes, dogs, and birds as large as the men; four dusky-looking chairs, from the seats of which the horse- hair bulged in various places; one discrepant sofa, a well- used drugget, a ricketty cheffonier upon which were ranged a few medical books, two meerschaum pipes, an instru- ment case, and a pair of boxing gloves; one green flower stand, with the paint much peeled off, containing one solitary myrtle pot : such were the articles of use. Elegance, however, was not unattempted, as Mrs. Cap- tain Wilson, their landlady, piqued herself upon her "taste," and, although "misfortunes" (not specified) had EXPIATION. 117 reduced her in circumstances, yet nothing she declared could "make her forget she was a lady!" Now Mrs. Wilson thought that ie a few elegant little knicknaeks," always made a room look well, and " so much depended on appearances I" Such was her theory ; her realisation of it may be gathered from the inventory of the knick-nacks gracing the drawing-room. Three large shells placed on the ledge of the cheffonier, were balanced by the charms of the mantelpiece; viz., in the centre one French cup and saucer, with a landscape and windmill painted on either side, from which rose to some height two peacock's feathers — very graceful, indeed; the cup was flanked on the one side by a tiny wax figure with tremulous head, carefully protected by a glass shade, with a rim of cut velvet round the base; and on the other side lay an alabaster poodle, with stiff curls and staring eyes; a cup, inverted in its saucer, stood by the poodle and wax figure ; two enormous shells followed; while at each extremity were two chimney candlesticks with glass drops (mostly broken), and save-alls in them to represent wax-ends. An ancient glass, with a diagonal crack, in a pauperised frame, hung over these ornaments; and over the glass hung a portrait of Mrs. Captain Wilson herself, in a low dress, with very long curls, as she might have appeared some twenty years before; one hand resting romantically on her bosom, and the other on the head of her daughter, a bony dabby child of six or seven, with flaxen ringlets and snub nose, holding in her hand a hoop of gigantic dimensions, while a blue scarf " carried off" her white muslin frock. A miniature of u the Captain," in bril- liant regimentals, and highly pacific countenance, graced the space between. 118 RANTHOEPE. I forgot to mention a stuffed blackbird in a glass-case which had a very lively effect on a side table. Harry rebelled against these ornaments at first, but Mrs. Captain Wilson assured him that they gave such a finish to his room when any body called ; and, in fact, so over- whelmed him with her experience as a woman and a housekeeper of many years' standing, that he was perforce obliged to let her have her way. Here Ranthorpe found an economical home, and a joyous companion, whose unflagging spirits served in a great measure to correct his despondency. But when Harry was absent, the fits of melancholy would return ; and the unhappy poet was unable to find refuge in the only direction where it could possibly be found — in work. And why was he unable ? In the whirl and giddiness of his lionism, he had contracted debts with the same recklessness as he had done every thing else. But his sense of honour was now galled when these debts were to be paid, and he found himself without money to pay them. He had been corrupted — not hardened. His great anxiety was how to free himself from debt. He tried to write; but his brain was sluggish. He was too unhappy, too me- lancholy, to write. He had lost his ambition, he had lost his illusions, and more than all he had lost his self-respect. The excuses, which I formerly endeavoured to make for him, did not occur to his mind. He only saw the facts and their results ; saw how he had wasted his money, his time, and his affections ; and lost his position, his ambition, and his now doubly-dear Isola. He threw down his pen and strolled out. His way led EXPIATION. 119 him into Hyde Park. A sudden pang shot through him as he saw Lady Wilmington's carriage driving slowly along. To avoid all possible rencontre, he turned into Kensington Gardens. There he wandered about gloomily, retracing the history of his acquaintance with Florence; and it was in this mood that he was startled and annoyed to find himself standing face to face with Fanny, who, blushing and smiling, held out her hand to him. The carriage had brought her there, and was waiting till she had concluded her walk. He was very agitated ; and his agitation communicated itself to her; though in general she was not at all shy with him. " How is it that we have not seen you?" she asked, at length. " Two whole months to-morrow, since you last caUed! Is this kind?" Ranthorpe looked at her wonderingly. " I thought you considered us as friends," she con- tinued, looking down. " I have been ill," he said, at last, anxious to make some answer. " 111? oh ... . not dangerously?" she said, eagerly. " I fear incurably," he said, without intending it. She raised her large eyes to him; they were full of tears. He felt uneasy. He could not understand her. She must surely know of Florence's rejection of him — and yet her manner seemed to show that she wished to be con- sidered his friend as heretofore. They walked on to- gether for a few yards in silence. " I hope you have the best advice," she said, timidly. " The very best — my physician is Sorrow. His drugs are bitter, but they either kill or cure." 120 RANTHORPE. " Sorrow ? — oh ! what cause can you have for sorrow?" " Many; above all, the loss of my own respect — the sense of my own weakness — madness." " What weakness can a mind like yours have — oh ! how can you, who have the world's respect, be wanting in your own ? This is some momentary despondency." " Are you then ignorant — is my secret a secret to you?'* She blushed deeply, and looked down. He misinter- preted her blush. " I see you know it; well, then, is it not weakness tc* forget your station — to raise your eyes to one who can never look down upon you, so far are you beneath her in the social scale ? — Is that not weakness — madness ?" Her eyes filled with tears; but they were tears of joy. A suffocating sensation — dim, but intense — rendered her speechless. She felt he was on the eve of declaring his love for her. " Oh," he continued, without noticing her agitation, " what a mockery it is to talk of genius — to declaim about the supremacy of mind — when the strongest mind is borne along by the wayward gusts of passion and vanity. "We are the slaves of our passions ; and our intellects only serve to make us aware of our slavery, without being able to burst its bonds. Miss Wilmington, you and I have often talked with enthusiasm about poets, yet, if you look into their biographies, you will find that one and all have suf- fered from ill-placed affection ; they have raised their eyes too high above them, or too low beneath them. This has been my misfortune, and I rue it now. I have been too ambitious. I have been misled by vanity to place my affections where they could only meet with scorn." "No — no — no — no!" eagerly answered Fanny, "not with scorn." EXPIATION. 121 et Then, with \£orse — with ridicule." " Ridicule !" she said, looking at him, tenderly, " you are not serious — you are trying rne; you — " she paused, and then, with a sudden effort, but in a low and scarcely audible tone, blushing deeply as she spoke, " You can- not have misunderstood me ?" Ranthorpe trembled; he understood her then, and his heart throbbed violently, as the wild thought flashed across his brain. She loved him ! In another instant he chased away the thought as the suggestion of his vanity. But one look at the agitated girl beside him, who, trembling, with downcast eyes, stood fluttering, like a new caught bird, awaiting his reply, con- vinced him that he had not misunderstood her. It was a moment of strange emotion. A young, rich, noble, charm- ing girl, avowing her love to a poor, melancholy, ruined man, and that man one who had so recently been rejected by her sister, would at all times have been perplexing ; but to him it was doubly so, from his anxiety as to how he should escape from the dilemma. He dared not deceive her ; he dared not undeceive her. To tell that she had misunderstood him, would have been excessively painful; to tell her that he had loved her sister, would scarcely be less so. Besides, in his heart of hearts, he was not a little gratified at her affection. I must do him the justice to say, that he never once thought of availing himself of it. He did not love her. Her rank and wealth were no temptations to him; although these things had certainly unconsciously added to Florence's charms. Nevertheless, Ms vanity was pleased — his wounded self-love was soothed at the idea of her affection for him. His silence only increased her agitation. He saw that 122 EANTHOEPE. it was necessary to speak; and justly deeming that plain avowal of Ms situation would on the whole be the least painful, as it would enable him to affect a misunderstand- ing of her words, he thus addressed her. " My dear Miss Wilmington, I am sure you are a sin- cere friend, and I will therefore confide in you that secret which your sister appears to have concealed." She was amazed and somewhat alarmed at this com- mencement ; the introduction of her sister was peculiarly unpleasant to her. " You are good enough to think that my affection would not be treated with scorn or ridicule ; because your own excellent heart assures you, that were you so placed, the refusal would at least be kindly. But your sister is dif- ferent, as I, unhappily, know too well. She won my heart — but she won it for her amusement ; and when I earnestly, but humbly laid it at her feet, she scorned me ! You weep — you feel for me ! Thank you for those tears. I, too, have wept over my folly — and this has been the ma- lady I spoke of ; my weakness was love ; my madness was loving one who could not, would not love me I" Her tears fell fast; her pale lips moved, but no word issued from them. The blood left her cheeks and rushed to support her sinking heart. She had been dashed from her pinnacle of joy, and was stunned by the fall. " This is the reason of my ceasing visits, which to me were once so delightful," he added, in the hopes of giving her time to recover herself whilst he spoke. " Of course I could never meet her again. Indeed, I have given up so- ciety altogether ; although there are some few whom I shall regret — yourself among them. There has always been the purest sympathy between us ; and I shall always preserve a delightful recollection of you. But you must see how EXPIATION. 123 imperative it is on me not to waste any more time in so- ciety where I have no rightful place. I have now to de- vote myself solely to art." They were at the gates. He conducted her to the car- riage, took a respectful but friendly leave of her, and saw the carriage drive off with peculiar satisfaction. When Fanny found herself alone she threw herself back and indulged in a paroxysm of grief. There was ►one ray of comfort — she had not betrayed her feelings — Kanthorpe had misunderstood her ! This was something ; it was a small ray of sunshine edging the thunder-cloud; but the cloud was not less dark and oppressive, because its edge was tinged with light. Ranthorpe walked home pensive. 124 RANTHORPE. CHAPTER IV. NEW HOPES. He arose fresh in the morning to his task; the silence of the night invited him to pursue it; and he can truly say that food and rest were not preferred to it. No part gave him uneasiness but the last, for then he grieved that the work was done. Bishop Hoene. O pouvoir merveilleux de l'imagination ! Le plaisir d'inventer ma fable, le soin de l'arranger, l'impression d'interet que faisait sur moi- meme le premier apereu des situations que je premeditais, tout cela me saisit et me detacha de moi-meme au point de me rendre croyable tout ce que Ton raconte des ravissements extatiques. Marmontel: Mtmoires. Ranthorpe had recovered his self-respect. The inter- view with Fanny Wilmington had this effect at least upon him : that it taught him, firstly — how easy it is for those in love to fancy their passion returned (and thus excused his weakness in supposing Florence loved him) ; secondly — it made him aware that his love for Florence had not been an adventurer's love — that her rank and wealth alone would never have dazzled him — never made his heart forget its allegiance to Isola. The reader may perhaps fancy that Ranthorpe needed no monitor to convince him of this; but we must under- stand that he "believed Florence to be nothing more than NEW HOPES. 125 a worthless frivolous, coquette. Accordingly, when in the severity of his self-examination he found that his love had been rather the result of a feverish excitement, than of real sympathy, he accused himself of having been dazzled by her extrinsic advantages, because he could then see nothing intrinsically worth loving. Fanny's love thus reinstated him in his own opinion. He felt that if he had erred, it was from no unworthy motive : the inexperience of youth, his extreme suscepti- bility, and Florence's art, were to blame; and Isola herself, he thought, would pardon him if she knew all ! His spirits revived, and he began to write with vigour. Some miscellaneous contributions to the magazines had put a little money in his pocket, and he resolved at once to write a tragedy upon which he would stake his chance. Harry warmly applauded this resolution; and having de- termined himself to work a little more steadily at his pro- fession, declared they would be " models to the young generation." Ranthorpe then set vigorously to work. Oh ! how happy were thte quiet days he now passed ! How calm and full was his content, contrasted with the unsettled feverish ex- citement of his former life ! There was but one sorrow — but one dark, ineffaceable spot: that was the remembrance of Isola, and the fruit- lessness of his search after her. No clue whatever was afforded of her whereabouts. At times he shuddered as he suspected her of having committed suicide. But this sus- picion was soon dispelled, by the reflection that her suicide would assuredly have been known ; and moreover, that she was too strong-minded to yield to any weakness of the kind. Her absence was the only drawback to his happiness. 126 KANTHOKPE. He used to rise early and strike across the fields for a long walk, during which he planned the scenes of his tragedy. The bracing air gave him such an appetite that Harry Cavendish, whose nightly dissipation destroyed his morn- ing appetite, was ceaseless in his jokes at the poetical vo- racity of his friend. Truly, the haycocks of bread-and-butter, and indefinite quantities of eggs, vanished with marvellous rapidity, while joyous conversation made digestion light. His mind recovered its elasticity, and his work advanced rapidly. Pungent and Bourne vainly endeavoured to dis- suade him from so wasting his time; he treated all their objections, founded on the ignorance of actors and ma- nagers, with the specific levity which characterises the poetic race. " It is useless for Bourne to talk," he said to Joyce one day ; "I know very well that a good play is sure to suc- ceed, and of course I fancy my play will be good. Bourne's plays have been unanimously refused, no doubt. No wonder; but I cannot see how what holds good of him, must necessarily hold good of me !" Bourne, however, was prodigal of his experience. He inveighed against Macready, because he would not play "Rodolpho the Accursed" a part written for him, and calling forth all his peculiarities, with a mad scene and a murder. Bourne's tirades fell flat upon the ear of his friend, who, having read " Rodolpho," could not but applaud the taste of the actor. He was not at all surprised at the treatment Bourne had received, nor at all disposed to think it could possibly apply to his play. " You are young and enthusiastic," said Bourne; " you love poetry — especially your own — you have confidence NEW HOPES. 127 in its success; but let me tell you, that managers and actors are equally leagued against all dramatists ; the former have an abstract horror of fine plays ; their penchants are for pageants — their souls are drunk with sumptuosities and 'gettings up.' Actors are no better: they think of nothing but their i parts, 5 which they never understand — no, not even when drilled by the author. All they care for is salary and applause." "Surely you libel them." " I don't, indeed; I flatter them, on the contrary." In spite of this advice, Ranthorpe continued, and con- stantly sat up all the night ere he could lay down his pen. This Mrs. Captain Wilson thought very extraordinary; but what struck her as still more so was the declamation which he so loudly indulged in, " frighting the dull ear of the drowsy night." While writing, he was often so excited, that he would rise, and twining his fingers in his hair, would stride about the room, declaiming the verses as they were flowing from his brain, in that state of poetic exaltation, so well named by the Greeks, enthusiasm — a being full of the God. Now, although Mrs. Captain Wilson had the very profoundest respect, and some regard for Ranthorpe, yet she could not consent to have her slumbers broken by these fits of enthusiasm. She could not understand, she said, " why he did not sit quietly at his table to write, as she did when she wrote a letter, or made out the washing -bill ;" and at last she was forced to remonstrate with him on the necessity of so doing. He apologised, and promised reformation. To carry this plan into efficient execution, he went to bed early. The next night he sat up, however, and wrote in silence till twelve o'clock. He then, quite unconsciously, began 128 RANTHORPE. to pace the room. To declaim to himself in an under- tone was, of course, the next step — and to be carried away by his feelings, and to raise his voice to ranting pitch, was a natural consequence. Mrs. Wilson turned uneasily in her bed, and had " no •opinion of authors." At length, to his great joy, and hers, the tragedy was finished. He read it over with considerable pride, and saw in it the sure foundation of his fortune. He then invited several of his friends to a reading of this play, that he might profit by their -suggestions. THE BEADING OF THE PLAY. 129 CHAPTER V. THE READING OF THE PLAY. Le Marquis. Quoi! chevalier, est ce que tu pretends soutenir cette piece? Dorante. Oui, je pretends la soutenir. Le Marquis. Parbleu ! je la garantis detestable. Dorante. Pourquoi est elle detestable? Le Marquis. Elle est detestable, parcequ'elle est detestable. Dorante. Apres 5a il n'y a plus rien a dire; voila son proces fait. Mais encore instruis nous, et nous dis les defaults qui y sont. Le Marquis. Que sais-je, moi? je ne me suis pas seulement donne la peine de l'ecouter. Mais enfin je sais que je n'ai jamais rien vu de si mediant, Dieu me damne! Moliere: La Critique de VEcole des Femmes. Bayes. You must know that I have written a whole play just in the very same style; it was never acted yet. Johnson. How so? Bayes. Egad, I can hardly tell you for laughing : ha! ha! ha! It's so pleasant a story, ha! ha! ha! Egad, the players refused to act it, ha! ha! ha! Johnson. That was rude. Bayes. Rude, ay, egad, they are the rudest and uncivilest persons, and all that, in the world. I've written, I do verily believe, a whole cart-load of things, every whit as good as this, and yet I vow to Gad these insolent fellows have turned them all back again upon my hands. The Rehearsal. The piece was to be read to a few " literary friends," i. e. gentlemen who expect boxes on the first night, and 130 HANTHOEPE. presentation copies ; in return for which they are ever ready to enlighten their circle of acquaintances with informa- tion as to "what— is doing now;" together with many interesting particulars of the opinions, habits, looks, and domesticities of the celebrated author; which particulars have their origin mostly in conjecture or exaggeration, but being uttered with confidence to a gossipping world, are received as unquestionable truths. From these un- sullied sources certain weekly newspapers are supplied, and evening parties enlivened. Thus the world becomes aware of the singular facts that Wordsworth likes the lean of mutton chops, and that Bulwer does not write his own novels. To such an audience, relieved by Pungent and Bourne, Ranthorpe was to read his play. Joyce and Wynton had seen it in manuscript. The candles were snuffed — the author coughed — the manuscript was bent backwards — and the auditors looked becomingly serious. The subject was announced as " Quintus Curtius." " Roman costume?" asked Bourne. "Of course." " Oh ! I only asked; you know, I suppose, that Roman costume is in very bad odour at the theatre. Several first-rate plays refused solely on account of the toga. I know it from personal experience." The poet replied that he was sorry to hear it ; but as he had no great faith in such obstacles, with " Virginius" before his eyes, he was not much alarmed. The reading commenced. The opening speech had scarcely been finished, when Pungent observed, " Pardon me the interruption — but you know my frankness — I may perhaps say fastidiousness — but don't THE READING OF THE PLAY. 131 you think the epithet ' pregnant danger' rather indeli- cate?" "To the pure all things are pure/' replied Ranthorpe. "True," added Pungent; "to the pure — but not to the pit. I daresay it may pass as a metaphor, but still you know the public is as censorious as a prude, and as sharp-nosed — I only give you my opinion — " Authors ! if ever you desire to appreciate the extent of men's impertinence, ask them for their opinions. Many many things they dare not utter spontaneously, are brought out by this inconsiderate candour. "Why — since you ask me my real opinion," they ob- serve (glad to escape the hypocrisy of politeness), by way of preface to their malice. Oh ! it is a glorious oppor- tunity. Never did they relish honest candour so much before. This Ranthorpe experienced. Pungent's objection was but the key-note to a chorus of carpings. His friends did not listen — they watched for words or metaphors to object to. They had come there to give their opinions, and nothing but discovery of faults could have reflected on their judgment. So annoyed was the unfortunate author, that he several times offered to cease the reading, but his " friends" were too anxious to exhaust their triumph, to consent to any cessation. At the end of the fourth act these judgments were severally passed: " I think it wants action." " No: but situation and variety." " Some comic characters would enliven it." li It is so very ill-constructed." " You have no villain — tragedies never succeed with- out villains." E2 132 EANTHORPE. "It is much too long." In spite of opposition the fifth act was clamorously solicited. During the perusal, the " literary friends" were observed to yawn, to read the titles of the books on the shelves, to examine the nature of their boots, and to be curious about their nails. They did not spare the fifth act ; the first four had hardened them in impertinence, and the taste of honest candour had been so inviting, that they surfeited them- selves at last with it. They advised him " as a friend" not to send it into any of the theatres. Bourne declared that if the piece were five times as per- fect, he would have no better chance of getting it produced, or looked at. He (Bourne) knew something of theatres, and Ranthorpe would one day tell him he had been right. For his part, he had quite given the drama over as hope- less; and until pageantry ceased, and the true intel- lectual drama, with purity of purpose and legitimacy of means, again arose, he (Bourne) should have nothing to do with it. With these, and many similar remarks, his friends took their leave, having taught him a lesson he was not likely to forget. He packed up his manuscript with offended pride, and reproached himself for having solicited their attention. "Had I merely shown my play to a few of my real friends, like Joyce and Wynton, I might have been spared this evening ; I might have received hints from which to profit. But these fellows are now rejoicing in having sat in judg- ment on a work they cannot comprehend. Should it succeed, they will exclaim on all sides, ' Yes, he read it to me in manuscript ; I took the liberty of suggesting some alterations.' Should it fail, they will declare that they predicted it ; that they offered some remarks, but my THE READING OF THE PLAY. 133 vanity would not allow me to avail myself of them. I will appeal to that sole critic, the public." Reader, are you of a " literary turn?" — if so, let me hint a word of counsel. Before you submit a manuscript ±o a friend for his opinion, be very sure he is a friend. It requires great confidence in a man's friendship and recti- tude, to place your self-love thus at his feet. The tempta- tion to exhibit his cleverness at your expense is irresistible. If not that, then there is the other temptation, of winning your good- will by unhesitating cajolery. Depend upon it he will see nothing good in your work, or every thing — unless he is really your friend, in which case he will not be deterred from very plain speaking ; he will not deceive you by flattery; he will point out the portions he objects to, with manly confidence in your appreciation of his motives. In this latter case, a friend's eye is, indeed, invaluable ; he alone can distinguish between intention and execution, and can tell whether what is clear to you, is also clear to the reader. But, as I said, you must have confidence in his judgment and his friendship before you risk his " friendly malice." 134 KANTHORPE. CHAPTER VI. COSA SCABKOSA. O, but man, proud man ! Drest in a little brief authority; Most ignorant of what he's most assured — Like an angry ape Plays such fantastic tricks before high heaven As make the angels weep ! Measure for Measure. 0, it is excellent To have a manager's strength; but it is tyrannous To use it like a manager. Ibid : variorum edition. About three hundred plays are every season sent in to each patent theatre — about three or four plays are produced !* Those who shout their approbation of a dramatist on the successful "first night," naturally think that it must be a glorious thing to sway the multitude of hearts then jubilant with enthusiasm; but little do they know all that the happy dramatist has undergone, before his play could * It must be remembered that this was written five years ago ; now there is not one patent theatre in which the legitimate drama is per- formed. But the cosa scabrosa, noted in this chapter, remains the same as ever. COSA SCABROSA. 135 be produced ; little do they know his petty vexations and serious alarms — the hopes and fears that have haunted his harassed brain — the " suing long to bide," and the " inso- lence of office," to which he has been subject ! Ranthorpe thought, that having written his play, the great obstacle was overcome; he knew not that he had three hundred rivals, and an ignorant judge: he soon unlearned his error. Ah! glorious shout that betokens success! How it thrills the heart! — how intoxicating is this feeling of suc- cess ! A thousand hands stirred by a thousand hearts, give my creation their approval ! Sweet, no doubt! but it would never repay the toil, anxiety, and distress which every dramatist must undergo. Ah no ! success has no such price ; the poet must be con- tent to draw repayment from the delight he experienced in the elaboration of his work, in all the blissful thoughts which it inspired, and in all the activity which it pro- voked — only thus can he be repaid ! Ranthorpe had yet to learn the conditions of success. Having copied out his tragedy with scrupulous neatness, he packed it up in a neat little parcel, and enclosed a neat little note, informing the manager he gave him ihejlrst offer of his play, which seemed perfectly adapted for the present company; and requesting, that in case of its not being considered suitable, the manager would return it to him as early as possible. This precious parcel he took himself to Covent Garden Theatre, for fear of any accident; and it was with extreme nervousness that he entered at the "stage door," and found himself in a dark, low, dismal-looking passage, where two actors, and some " understrappers," were en- gaged in a little playful conversation. He asked if ] 36 RANTHORPE. Mr. was within. One of the actors turned to the porter, and said: "Walker, here's a gentleman wants Mr. ; is he in?" Walker was at that moment superintending the cook- ing of a chop, and without raising his eyes from the grid- iron, replied: " No — won't be here to-day." "Then," replied Ranthorpe, "I'll leave this parcel for him." He blushed, for he felt that every one present must have detected him to be an author, and his parcel to contain a play. He hurried into the street again, and felt a load was off his mind. His play was presented ; the next step was to have it produced. He invented several forms under which the flattering admiration of the manager would be expressed, in the note which would follow his first perusal. Then he doubted, perhaps, whether the manager would not be too cunning to express all he felt, for fear of raising exorbitant demands from the author. Before he reached his home, he had already signed his agreement with the manager, who all this time was as innocent of any inten- tion of reading his play, as he had been of the two hun- dred and ninety-nine others ! A week passed, and another and another; yet no answer from the manager. Very strange! he must have had abundance of time to read the play. Another week passed ; still no answer. Annoyed at this silence, Ranthorpe ad- dressed him a long letter : equally unaswered. Exasperated he wrote again in a very angry style : no answer ! He called at the theatre : the manager was out. He called again: the manager was engaged. He called a third, fourth, fifth, and sixth time, and Mr. was always out, at rehearsal, or engaged. The season closed, and Percy had received no answer. Deeply mortified, he wrote a very peremptory letter COS A SCABEOSA. 137 demanding that his play should be instantly returned to him: and asking Mr. if he knew whom he was treating in that ungentlemanly manner. He received no answer ! Taking his horsewhip with the firm intention of apply- ing it to the back of the insolent blackguard, who had treated him with such utter want of respect, he arrived at the theatre and found it closed. The manager was on the continent " during the recess." I know not whether " they manage these things better in France," but I am sure that they cannot manage them more unfeelingly. There can be no doubt that managers are a harassed race ; but their own interest no less than the respect due to all men, requires that they should adopt some better mode of treating with authors. 138 RANTHORPE. CHAPTER VII. THE DRAMATIST WITH THE MANAGER. II est vrai qu'il les connait mal, mais il les paie bien, et c'est de quoi maintenant nos arts ont plus de besoin que de toute autre chose. Pour moi, je vous l'avoue, je me repais un peu de gloire. Les applaudissements me touchent; et je tiens que c'est un supplice assez facheux que de se produire a, des sots. II y a plaisir a, travailler pour des personnes qui soient capable de sentir les delicatesses d'un art, et par de chatouillantes approbations, vous r^galer de votre travail. Moliere: Bourgeois Gentilhomme. Y escribo por el arte inventaron Los que el vulgar aplauso pretendieron; Porque como las paga el vulgo, es justo Hablarle en necio, para darle gusto. Lope de Vega: Arte nuevo de hacer Comedias. Imagine Ranthorpe's surprise when, some time after- wards, Joyce called on Mm with the information that the manager of Covent Garden had desired to see him the next day at two o'clock. " I see your surprise," he added, " but it is a fact. I have some influence at the theatre, and interested my- self about your tragedy. After persisting with savage energy for some time, I succeeded in making him read it : directly he had read it, he said he would put it on the stage, and he wishes to consult you on some alterations." Ranthorpe forgot his anger in the pleasure of this news. THE DRAMATIST WITH THE MANAGER. 139 He no longer thought of horsewhipping the manager who admired, and would produce his play. " I suppose," said Joyce, " you wont object to make such alterations he may suggest." " That depends upon the things suggested." " Of course of course. But the fact is, you know, that people in the theatre have advantages which authors want; they have great practical experience — they under- stand the public taste." " Amply do they show this — by repeated failures," said Ranthorpe, laughing. " Why, I suppose like other men they make mistakes sometimes." " The exceptions are too numerous to prove the rule." " Nay, you are hard. What I was going to say was, don't reject their opinions." " I won't when they agree with my own. I can't be more impartial." There was a drizzly rain falling, and a keen wind blow- ing, as Ranthorpe set forth, the following day, for Co vent Garden theatre ; but the exultation of his mind prevented his noticing the inclemency of the weather, and he walked along holding imaginary conversations with the manager, and stoutly resisting imaginary alterations. On arriving at the theatre he was shown into the " waiting-room" while the " call boy" took up his card. The waiting-room of Covent Garden is not illustrious for its elegance. It looks as dismal and despairing as the poor poets and un- engaged actors condemned to wait there. Two or three ricketty cane chairs — one table — and a very ancient carpet, constitute the permanencies; while variety is given by an occasional violincello case, a roll of music, a wet umbrella, 140 RANTHORPE. or a paper of sandwiches, belonging to one of the gentle- men of the orchestra. Seated on those chairs, or looking from the window out upon the paved court-yard, may at all times be seen various poets and farce-writers waiting to see the manager — to have an answer to their letters, or to get back the unread play; together with actors and " artistes," wives of chorus- singers, attorneys' clerks, and creditors. Every one looks furtively at his neighbour, and wonders " who the devil he can be?" Silence is mostly kept; — especially by the authors, who are afraid of betraying their secret. Ranthorpe had not waited long before the " call boy" announced to him that Mr. was ready to see him. He followed him, accordingly, up a murky stone stair- case, on which he met several of the actors whom he re- cognised, and soon put his foot upon the boards, having been duly cautioned " to look out for traps." He had never been behind the scenes before ; and as he marked the daubed and dirty canvas which crowded the back part of the stage, he wondered at ever having been delighted with such things. As he passed down to the front, and saw the actors at rehearsal, his disenchantment was complete. He had believed that rehearsals were studies : that actors there made the experiments in their art, which were to be consummated on the stasre. He was not a little disgusted to see them with their hats and bonnets on, their " parts" in their hands, gabbling through their speeches, like boys and girls impatient to be out of school. But this disenchantment was not without good effect : it was the key note to his interview with the manager; and prepared him to listen with more patience to the technical suggestions which were offered. THE DRAMATIST WITH THE MANAGER. 141 He was shown into the manager's room, with the in- formation that Mr. would be with him at once. He east his eye around him, had only time to notice a cheval glass, over which hung an embroidered dressing-gown, and against which leaned a stage sword; a sofa strewed with newspapers and play-bills; a stage edition of Shakspeare, Oxberry^s Acting Drama, some old plays, and a London Directory, huddled together on a shelf. Scarcely had he scrutinised these, than Mr. appeared, and shaking him warmly by the hand, declared he was delighted to see him. " Well, Mr. Ranthorpe," he said, as he seated himself, " I have read your tragedy with attention — very great attention — and I can truly say, that I was charmed with it — quite charmed. It is quite a treat to me to see such a play, I assure you. Fanciful dialogue — ideal dialogue — " and he looked at him to mark what effect this flattery might have. "Ideal dialogue," he continued, "powerful language, and all that sort of thing — but rather too long." " Too long?" " Rather — for the stage. But that can be easily altered ; and the parts quite suit our company ." " I shall be happy to shorten it." " There will be a great many trifling alterations neces- sary — mere trifles — but very important trifles on the stage. Some of your situations, for example, are impracticable." Here he detailed some. " Impracticable !" exclaimed the astonished poet, " why they have never been tried — they are original I" "Yes: perhaps so," resumed the manager, with com- placency, " but original situations are always dangerous. 142 EANTHOEPE. Keep to what has been tried, and proved successful — it will prove so again: that is my maxim !" " But unless certain things are tried, you will never know whether they succeed or not." " They would have most probably been tried before now, if thought well of. Our house is too expensive to be a school for experiments ; we cannot afford to fail. I always wait till some other house has risked a novelty : if it fails, I rejoice at my escape; if it succeeds, I imitate it, and work it till the public declares * hold, enough.' " Ranthorpe certainly could not object to a manager's taking his own measures for making money, but he re- belled against the idea of making art subservient to them. "What you say is perfectly just/ 5 replied Mr. , " respecting the play as a literary production; but for the stage, other necessities are to be attended to. Now you have three Roman soldiers, who only come on in one scene, but that scene is important. Nevertheless it cannot be played, because I should have to put three under- strappers, at a shilling a night, into those parts, and their very appearance would d — n them." " But could you not have three good actors ?" " Impossible : they would not play the parts : not their line! Believe me, you have too many subordinate cha- racters." " Not more, I think, than the artistic construction re- quires." " For the stage, unquestionably. Allow me to assure you, as the result of long experience, that minor charac- ters are the ruin of half the plays. Badly performed, the audience never takes any interest in them. The laugh which THE DRAMATIST WITH THE MANAGER . 143 precedes damnation always begins with them. Depend upon it, sir, that Understrappers are the Small-pox of the drama : where they fail to kill, they leave indelible scars /" Ranthorpe laughed. " I am serious," continued the manager. " What hap- pened to us the other day ? That booby B was cast for Matcliff, in ' Richard the Third.' You must know that one of his illustrious predecessors playing the part, instead of answering Richard's ' Who's there ?' by ' Ratcliff, my lord, 'tis I. The early village cock Hath tAvice done salutation to the morn.' was so troubled by Kean's ferocious look, that he said, ' Tis I, my lord, the early village cock f which brought down the house in one shout of laughter. Well, B was warned of this mistake, and the warning only served to puzzle him the more, so that when he got on the stage, and Richard screamed ' Who's there?' he blurted out — 'My lord — there are cocks in the village? to the convulsion of the audience." i 'That only proves the necessity," said Ranthorpe, laughing, " of having well- trained actors to support the minor characters, and not the necessity of expunging minor characters from the drama." They then went over the play together, Mr, in- sisting on immense alterations ; the effect of which was to cut out all originality, and reduce it to a piece, as much as possible, like every other play that had ever been acted ; and having lopped off all that had not been represented before, the manager was confident of success ! The poet contested several points very stoutly; but he 144 RANTHOEPE. was forced to succumb, because he could only get bis tragedy performed on condition of its being what the manager wanted, and not what had been written. With a heavy heart he took back his manuscript to use the pruning knife, and make " the necessary alterations," and almost doubted whether it would be worth his while to have a mutilated fragmentary play produced at all. REHEARSALS. 145 CHAPTER VIII. REHEARSALS. O, there be players that I have seen play — and heard others praise — not to speak it profanely, that neither having the accent of Christians, nor the gait of Christian, pagan, or man, have so strutted and bellowed that I have thought some of nature's journeymen had made men and not made them well, they imitated humanity so abominably. Hamlet. To please in town or country, the way is to cry, wring, cringe, into attitudes, mark the emphasis, slap the pockets, and labour like one in the falling sickness: that is the way to work for applause; that is the way to gain it. Goldsmith. Ranthorpe spent many a sleepless night in effecting the alterations in his tragedy. Managers fancy that alteration must be an easy matter, as all would fancy who had never tried; but every work that is really a work of art, costs infinite labour in the altering. I do not here speak of the repugnance to distort the work for the sake of theatrical precedent. I mean the absolute intellectual labour of re-arranging materials, or pieceing in new portions with the old. When once a conception has been incarnated, and developed in all its ramifica- tions, so that it has expanded into a vital whole, the L 146 KANTHOKPE. parts of which, are dependent yet constituent — then indeed to ei alter;" to wrench out one scene or cha- racter ; to give a different turn to this and that incident ; in order to " bring them up to situation," and from this mosaic to produce a whole; is not only difficult, it is almost impossible. Thankless was the toil he underwent ; but it made him forget his sufferings; it directed his whole thoughts to his play, and to the prospects for his future career opened by that play. His alterations completed, he again pre- sented himself at the theatre, and was received with the same warmth by Mr. , who now declared the play was certain of success. It was read in the green-room, and the actors were all in its favour. Nothing could ex- ceed their enthusiasm — every one was confident that " the town" would be in raptures. In short, as so often happens, a second S hakspeare was about to revive the drooping drama. Theatrical gossip was full of the new play, and the " Dramatic Intelligence" in the Sunday newspapers was in mysterious ecstacies of anticipated delight. No prospects could have been more brilliant than those of our hero for the success of his piece, and he smiled a calm reply to all Bourne's insinuations respecting its not coming out at all. " For my part, I tell you frankly,'' said Bourne, "that you may consider yourself a lucky dog to get your play read; but — " here he dropped his voice to a mellifluous whisper; " I think they must be insane if they bring it out. It will never do — Roman subjects don't do. Besides, your play wants situation. My Rodolplw had a tableau at the end of each act — and a murder — yet they said it wanted situation !" Now came on the harassment of rehearsals. He was KEHEAKSALS. 147 forced to attend them all for his own sake, as he had to instruct some of the actors in the right pronunciation of the Roman names, and some few English words. There was one most desperate cockney who could not be in- duced to call "Fulvia" any thing but " Fulviar;" another had got irrevocable in his head, and couldn't get it out. Whenever Ranthorpe quietly suggested a correction, the invariable reply was : " Oh, yes ! I'll be sure to remember it." There was another who could not be made to deliver correctly this passage, to be said in agitation : Fulvia is my sister — true — But why am I — her brother — to be mixed — In all her headstrong plans? This he delivered, as, Fulvia is my sister — true ! But why am I her brother? — to be mixed In all her headstrong plans? — " I beg your pardon," observed the author, biting his lips; " but you have mistaken my meaning in that pas- sage. " But why am I? a slight pause after * I,' if you please, to denote the flurry of his thoughts, and then resume ' her brother' — then another slight pause. " " Oh, I know what you mean — Fulvia is my sister — true! But why? am I her brother? — " No, no," shouted Ranthorpe; but his anger was in- audible in the laughter with which this reading was re- ceived. These were not the only torments : positive blunders of pronunciation or of grammar can be corrected; but blun- ders of emphasis, and more especially of conception, are very difficult to correct in an actor who, as he regards the l2 148 RANTHORPE. literature of the drama solely as " the words" deems his duty done when he has learnt those words. A queer-looking old gentleman in a scratch wig was generally present at these rehearsals, which he seemed to inspect with great interest, though he never made any remark. But he used to eye Ranthorpe with a rigid scrutiny, that made him feel very uncomfortable. He asked one or two of the actors who this old gentleman was; they only knew his name was Thornton, and that he was a great play-goer. This information did not sa- tisfy Ranthorpe, who could see no connexion between being a play-goer, and always watching him so strangely. Nevertheless, all the uneasiness and anger provoked by the various blunders at rehearsal, were dispelled as the poet walked home and saw underlined on the play-bills the magic words: In rehearsal, and will speedily be produced, a new Tra- gedy, in five Acts. There was a significant mystery in the announcement, and as he saw the people stop to read it, he moved away with a sort of uncomfortable consciousness, not unmixed with a notion that every body must recognise him as the author of that tragedy; and when any body in turning from the bill looked him in the face, he blushed invo- luntarily. To have a play in rehearsal ! Who is there that has not speculated on the glory and delight of such an event? Who has not pictured to himself what his feelings would be on such an occasion ? It would be a curious morsel of moral statistics to calcu- late the number of human minds annually inflated with such a desire. If we consider that every man who writes at all, or even dabbles in literature, has at one period of REHEARSALS. 149 his life essayed a play, and then take pencil and slate, and calculate the enormous amount of authors, scribblers, and " gentlemen of a literary turn/ 5 we shall be able to work out a tolerably startling sum of wo aid-be dramatists. Every one of these men has had more or less the idea of having his play performed ; and although many plays are <; written solely for the closet " (when the stage has refused them), yet the idea of a rehearsal must have been unani- mously entertained. To the Thousand and One Knights of the Drama, therefore, I appeal for sympathy with Ran- thorpe's feelings, which can be so much more easily " ima- gined than described." It was indeed a glorious time for him — so glorious as almost to make him forget the want of her sympathy with his hopes which alone could have made his felicity com- plete. The public were now informed that The new Tragedy of QUINTUS CURTIUS will be produced on Thursday next; supported by the entire strength of the company. On Wednesday afternoon, however, the rehearsal did not go off so glibly as was to be desired, so the public was " respectfully informed that, owing to the indisposition of a Principal Performer, the new Tragedy of Quintus CuRTius is unavoidably postponed till Saturday next ; when it will positively be produced, on a scale of unex- ampled splendour !" 150 RANTHORPE. CHAPTER IX. THE TRAGEDY IS PERFORMED. Now sits Expectation in the air! Henry V. How like a younker, or a prodigal, The scarfed bark puts from her native hay, Hugged and embraced by the strumpet wind! How like a prodigal doth she return; With overweather'd ribs, and ragged sails, Lean, rent, and beggar'd by the strumpet wind! Merchant op Venice. The Saturday night arrived. There was considerable agitation in the green-room, as is customary on " first nights," and considerable excitement on the part of Ran* thorpe, as is customary with authors. He flattered some, and counselled others. Fulvia's brother absorbed a good deal of his attention; and he endeavoured to make that gentleman clearly understand that there was no sort of question why he was Fulvia's brother. The afternoon had been rainy, and had only cleared up towards sunset. Every cloud had been scrutinised as an omen, and resented as an insult; every streak of blue per- ceptible in the sky was exaggerated into certain evidence of clearing up; till at last the weather did clear up; and THE TRAGEDY IS PERFORMED. 151 Pungent told him that was a most fortunate occurrence, that afternoon shower. " Fortunate ! pray how?" " Why it will prevent your friends from being re- marked." " Really, my dear Pungent, I don't comprehend you." « Why, of course, you have a tribe of friends coming to support you, and whatever the weather, friends always bring umbrellas. Now the rain will bring a number of umbrellas, and thus conceal your friends in the crowd." "Ha! ha! well thought of, Pungent ; but I have no friends in the house." " No friends !" said the incredulous critic. "None: I determined to give no orders — to ask no friends. I want to have the unbiassed judgment of the public. I want the success of my first night to be as genuine as the others." " My dear Ranthorpe, your romantic notions have un- done you. Friends are the necessary counterbalance to the malevolence always awakened on a first night." " I have few enemies." " Personally, perhaps; but dramatically avast number. The case stands thus : not to mention personal foes, there are always a number of envious rascals glad to d — n, they care not whom; to these add all the d — d dramatists — and all the friends of the e other house/ anxious to prevent the success of a rival; and you will find yourself with a toler- able and formidable host of opponents." "But the public?" " Why the public is an ass, and will be lead c as tenderly by the nose as asses are. 3 The public is neither for you nor against you. If you strike its fancy, it exaggerates your merits ; if you happen to be above it, or below it, 152 EANTHOEPE. you are lost. But I was hasty in saying the public is neither for nor against you. It is against you. You appeal to its judgment — your fate is in its hands — the temptation to exhibit their judgment and power is irresistible." " How then do plays succeed?" " By friends: judicious friends. Not those asses who applaud right and left : but friends who know the good parts, and shout themselves hoarse at them. You have exhibited a passion — the public wavers — knows not ex- actly whether to applaud or condemn — let some one com- mence the bravos, and down comes the storm. This is the use of friends : they give the public courage to applaud : they spur hesitation." There was some truth in this, but his friend could not see it; he trusted to the force of his play to carry the audience with him; and cared little for claqueurs or cabals. Bourne always went to hiss: and every " first night" he was to be seen in a side box, very enthusiastic in dis- approval, so that actors, " Dreading the deep damnation of his ' Bah!' Soprano, basso, tenor, and contralto, Wished him five fathoms under the Eialto." Banthorpe felt very uncomfortable as he caught the sharp peering glance of the queer-looking old man whom he used to see at rehearsals. He could not account for the uneasiness he felt at his appearance : the more so as the old man's glance, though inquisitive, was kindly. The overture commenced; the theatre began to fill; intellectual heads were sprinkled in the boxes; critics nodded to each other and smiled; ladies adjusted their shawls, and crumpled the play bills; box doors opened and shut with slams, and dandies looked round the theatre THE TRAGEDY IS PERFORMED. 153 with their opera-glasses. The curtain rose, and the au- dience hustled into their seats. The first scene was between two women, and was accompanied by perpetual opening and shutting of doors, varied with exclamations as to " First party" — " Second row" — " One front and one se- cond;' " Take a bill, sir?" " That seat is taken, sir." " Silence!" "Hush!" Of course this scene escaped unheard. In the second scene Quintus Ourtius appeared. Mr. the tragedian being a great favourite, was listened to with attention. The lady who played the heroine was new to the London boards, and was consequently very timid. Ranthorpe was in a fever of impatience, and only consoled himself by the rounds of applause which greeted two or three bursts of poetry. The act ended, leaving the public in a pleasant disposi- tion towards the author. There had been no action ; de- scriptions, and one love scene, had occupied the act: but audiences are tolerant early in the evening, and con- sent to be amused with poetry alone ; and it was confessed on all sides that " Quintus Curtius" was full of stately and elaborate poetry, often rising to impassioned eloquence. The regular enemies, and malicious friends, contented themselves with remarking the want of action, and looking forward to the third act. I may as well here give a slender outline of the plot, that the reader may the more clearly understand its pro-* 1 gression. In selecting the historical anecdote of Quintus Curtius, he had availed himself of the dramatist's privilege to surround that anecdote with what circumstances he pleased. He, therefore, made Quintus in love with a noble Roman maiden. This with some minor details oc- cupied the first act. In the second the earthquake occurred, 154 RANTHORPE. and the consternation of Rome was at its height as the curtain fell. In the third act the oracle declared that the earth would only close over the body of some Roman, and Quintus offered himself as the sacrifice. The fourth act was occupied with the grief of his mistress and his mother at the thought of his self-immolation, and their attempts to dissuade him from it; he remaining immoveable in his design, yet bowed somewhat by his sorrow. In the fifth act some of the people taunted him with the delay, and told him that the earth still yawned. He parted from his love — more like one going to conquest. The leap was not represented, but 'described by the mother of Quintus looking out : the heroine listening to her narrative in ago- nised suspense. A shout proclaimed the leap to be taken, and the curtain fell. This is the skeleton of the play. The reader sees how deficient it is in substance for five acts ; a deficiency Ran- thorpe himself would have seen, had he not been deluded by his own delight in the mere poetry, and believed that to be an efficient substitute for action. We may now let the curtain rise for the second act. This, though written with the same vigour and beauty as the former one, was received with visible weariness ; people had got tired of speeches and descriptions, and showed such signs of this, that some of the enemies thought a hiss might be ventured upon it. " Silence ! silence ! turn him out," instantly resounded from all parts of the house, as the ill-timed hissing began. The public had not yet rescinded its judgment; and though not approving of this act, yet (when the hissing commenced,) it applauded vehemently, out of contradic- tion. Upon this applause came a magnificent descrip- tion of the earthquake, which made the " umbrellas" THE TRAGEDY IS PERFORMED. 155 uproarious ; and when the consternation and well-grouped confusion of the Roman citizens, escaping from the yawn- ing horror, formed a " situation" for the act to end with, then indeed were the umbrellas excited — then did the sticks approve dogmatically, and hands tingle with real admiration, and voices were husky with bravos ! " Wait till the third act," replied the adverse party. The author's feelings during the second act it would be difficult to paint. It is a bitter lesson of his errors that a man learns when first he sees his play represented. When he sees the weaknesses which he had slurred over with im- patience, and which he would not see to be weak, now brought before the audience in all their nakedness. Pas- sages which he had qualified as those of "necessary repose," becoming on the stage those of unnecessary tediousness — the " quieter parts" becoming the sleepy ones. This the poet now for the first time felt ; he saw his error, and cursed it, because now irretrievable; and he noted the silence and impatience of the audience, by no means grateful for " the repose" he had afforded them. What made it worse, was, that the actors saw this also. They are the first to feel whether a play is going well or ill, and are the first to be depressed. By the end of this second act, they had very strong suspicions that this w new Shakspeare" was a nobody. The third act — -the act began — enemies were eager and expectant. It opened with " repose," and the enemies chuckled, making very audible references to bringing night-caps, and to the effect of narcotics. The public was also somewhat impatient. At this period Fulvia's brother appeared, and the author trembled. This unfor- tunate actor was gifted with a pair of cruelly bandy legs, and a broken nose ; so that the Roman costume did not 156 RANTHORPE. become him, or rather lie did not become the Roman costume. The audience giggled; when he spoke, they laughed — for his helmet was fastened so tightly that he could scarcely move his chin, and his elocution suffered from its effects. Being laughed at does not increase an actor's confidence, and our friend had become highly nervous by the time he arrived at the dreaded passage, and he stuttered forth : Fulvia is my sister — true ! But — am I her brother? To be mixed — A yell of derision interrupted him, and Ranthorpe sank back in the box in utter despair; he felt that now the laughter had begun, nothing could save his play. It was in vain that Quintus himself appeared, the titter- ing continued, for Fulvia's brother remained upon the stage, and the very sight of him was the signal for laughter. Now the storm began, and ridicule and insult followed every speech; the piece was fast falling, when it was saved by the energy of Quintus, offering himself as saviour of his country. This was a fine situation, and gloriously acted: the splendour of the diction, the earnest- ness of the sentiments, and the force of the acting, quite turned the tide in its favour, and the curtain fell amidst prolonged shouts, which drowned the groans and hisses of the enemies. The pit became the scene of animated discussion during the entr 1 acte, and the adverse party had a desperate battle to fight. The fourth act began with animation, and soon changed into pathos ; but it fell off subsequently, and when the mother and the mistress of Quintus began their lamentations, the weakness of the scene was again heightened by the inerrl- cacy of the acting, the giggling recommenced. This gig- gling agitated Fulvia so much, that she lost all confidence, THE TRAGEDY IS PERFORMED. 157 and with her confidence all remembrance of her part. Small blunders passed unobserved — greater ones were laughed at — but the " worst had still to come." When Quintus replied to her entreaties that he had sworn to fulfil his vow and sacrifice himself, she forgot the speech of passionate entreaty which was to follow, and ex- claimed : What, leave me!— oh! She then stopped, unable further to improvise, and too agitated to hear the prompter; urged by the tittering public to proceed, she added — Oh!— please, don't! and " inextinguishable laughter shook" the house. From this moment there was no cessation; the storm raged with all the violence of a public that has found out its mistake, and is anxious to atone for it. Peals of laughter, yells, shrieks, shrillest whistling, hooting, slangs popular catchwords, mocking " bravos" and " go its," accompanied every scene. That great Leviathan, the public, took a savage pleasure in tearing the author to pieces. Many causes might have been detected for the violence of the uproar. First, seeking that sensation in damning the play, which the play itself had refused to excite; secondly, there was the exaggeration of emulation in obloquy — there was revenge, for having paid their money for amusement, and not being amused; and, thirdly, there was the delight in an uproar, which is always grateful to human beasts of all ages and nations. The actors came on, and opened their mouths, and " sawed the air with their arms," but not a word was au- dible ; for the thunder of the gods and the yells of the 158 EANTHORPE. pit drowned every noise but their own. Thus ended the fourth act, to the great amusement of the audience. Ranthorpe was nowhere to be found ! The curtain rose for the last time, but it was only the signal for the storm to recommence. In vain did the manager step forward and request the audience to suspend their judgment till the play was ended; they applauded him, and laughed at the actors. Louder and louder grew the storm with every succeed- ing scene, and the din became so fearful, that many left the house, and some of the bawlers could not hear their own voices. Amidst this uproar the curtain fell ; and then arose a mocking shout for "the author! the author!" After which the delighted damners rushed into the Albion, to discuss the exquisite joke over "kidneys and a pint of stout;" or went home to report the failure to their wives and families. The manager was sick with disgust; resolved never to burn his fingers again with " that d — d humbug, the legitimate drama," but to spend his money upon spectacles and ballets — a resolution he faithfully performed, till the Bench relieved him of his arduous duties, and Basinghall Street released him from his creditors. ASPIRATION AND INSPIRATION. 159 CHAPTER X. ASPIRATION AND INSPIRATION. For when sad thoughts perplex the mind of raan There is a plummet in the heart that weighs And pulls us, living, to the dust we came from. Beaumont and Fletcher. Hence doth spring the well from which doth flow The dead black streams of mourning, plaints and woe. Ferrex and Porrex. What mortal in the world, if without inward calling he take up a trade, an art, or any other mode of life, will not feel his situation mise- able ? But he who is born with capacities for any undertaking, finds in executing this the fairest portion of his being. Nothing upon earth without its difficulties! It is the secret impulse within; it is the love and the delight we feel, that help us to conquer obstacles, to clear out new paths, and to overleap the bounds of that narrow circle in which others poorly toil. Wilhelm Meister. (Carlyle's translation.) And what were the author's feelings on hurrying from the theatre ? He wandered, unconscious whither his footsteps led him, brooding on the sadness which assailed his heart. All his brilliant visions were shattered like glass — all his ambitious hopes were crushed. 160 RANTHOEPE. His tragedy, upon which so much was staked, had failed; and although he knew that much of the disappro- bation had been excited by the absurdities of the actors, yet he could not lay the whole burden of the failure upon them. Had they been competent, had they known their parts, his play would have been received with more kindness, perhaps, but would not have succeeded. He had seen the torrent of ridicule arrested by a single speech, and laughter converted into enthusiastic applause by the con- clusion of the third act. The fault of his play was in its not having sustained interest. When the minds of the audience are uninterested, they are ready to pounce upon any imperfection, and convert it into amuse- ment. Ranthorpe felt that he had failed because he deserved to fail. His reflections were most poignant. No failure is so palpable, crushing, irredeemable, as the failure of a play. Other works are neglected; plays are energetically said to be d — d. Ranthorpe's self-love was therefore sorely lacerated. But this was not all: something far deeper than literary vanity was hurt. The failure seemed to him a revelation of the inanity of all his dreams — an irresistible proof that he had mistaken Aspiration for In- spiration. This mistake is common enough, and dangerous; but when the unhappy wight awakens to a sense of his error, it is fatal. So long as the delusion be continued, it will be a fountain of happiness to sustain the thirsting heart. A man will bear all privation and all neglect, if he can but believe himself to be simply neglected, not wasted. But once let him perceive that his life has been wasted on a chimera — that his energies have been squandered to make ASPIRATION AND INSPIRATION. 161 him ridiculous — that the light he has followed is no real star glimmering in the heavens, but only a will-o'-wisp dancing over murky fens and bogs — once let him perceive this, and the bloom and beauty of life is shrivelled up for ever. Yet there have been few men of genius, I fancy, who have not had their moments of despondency. Exalted by the contemplation of Beauty, and the harmonious witch- eries of Proportion, they have looked upon their own efforts with disgust; aspiring after perfection they have doubted their capacity to attain it, and questioned themselves nar- rowly as to whether they have not mistaken the aspira- tion, common to so many, for the inspiration given to so few. The very superiority of mind which enables them to conceive perfection, only the more readily detects the distance which separates their works from it. In these moments of despondency, when with bitter irony a man interrogates himself and says — Am I what I thought myself? and receives only dark, vague answers — then, should failure come as confirmation, the thought of suicide arises, and is eagerly clutched at by despair. To such despondency a few noble spirits have succumbed: spirits who had endured the goading*evils of poverty, envy, and neglect — endured them to a frightful extent, but never suffered them to quell their giant energies. They wrong us who believe we quail before the ordi- nary ills of life ! We have more than a common cou- rage to endure ; the history of our heroic predecessors amply shows it. Our lives are chequered ; but because our path is on the stony highway, where thorns and flints pierce our bleeding feet, have we turned aside ? Have we ceased the combat when wounded ? No ; if the path M 162 RANTHORPE. be ston j, are there not flowers growing on the hedge ? If the path be dark before us, have we not an inner lamp to guide us safely onwards? Ay ; a lamp whose smallest glimmer irradiates the world with beauty ! By its light we walk, and walk cheerily; by its rays we are warmed and gladdened in the depth of winter nights, when perhaps the last dying embers flicker on our desolate hearths. We may be poor, but we are never abject ; we may be neglected, but we are not unhappy until we neg- lect ourselves ! It is only when this inner lamp is quenched, or when we look on it as some false will-o'-wisp, that all the glory of our mission fades away ; and then what wonder if we arrest our steps and die blaspheming ? Answer, Chatterton ! Gilbert ! Haydon ! To have passed a life of cherished hopes and visionary efforts, and to find at last that they were based on air ! To have forsaken all this bounteous world affords, to feed the hungriest vanity, or greediest sense, and to find that you have been a dupe, a miserable dupe ! To hear the ceaseless roll of waters as they break upon the shore, and know how great the busy joyous world they speak of; yet to feel like some poor stranded bark that had tempted the rough waves in youthful confidence, and now lies broken and deserted on them ! To feel that everywhere around you, men are happy, busy, and you alone without an aim — you alone purposeless, hopeless, joyless — you alone wasted! And in this despondency to recall the delicious reveries and bounding hopes which once were yours: to recal the lonely walks, on summer eves, along sequestered streams, where your busy fancy struck out many a gilded pageant of the future ; to recall your midnight studies, when with burning head and aching eyes you peered into the secrets ASPIRATION AND INSPIRATION. 163 of the great Departed; and then to look upon your present state, aimless and joyless ! To awaken from the dream of life to find that inner lamp was false, a mockery of your hopes ! This is misery — this is despair mighty enough to quell the stoutest heart ! And this despair seized Percy Ranthorpe, and he re- solved to die ! m2 164 RANTHORPE. CHAPTER XI. DESPAIR. A me non ride L' aprico margo, e dall' eterea porta H mattutino albor; me non il canto De' colorati augelli, e non de' faggi H murmure saluta: e dove all' ombra Dell' inchinati salici dispiega Candido rivo il puro seno, al mio Lubrico pie le flessuose linfe Disdegnando sottragge, E preme in ruga 1' odorate spiagge. Giacomo Leopardi: Canti. The streets were noisy ; life, in its myriad aspects, ap- peared to the wretched poet, insolent and hideous. He strode along the streets with bitterness at heart, and defiance in his look. Several chemists shops had he passed, because in each he saw some customer, and he felt ashamed to ask for poison in the presence of another. Having in his wanderings reached Wellington Street, he at once bethought him of the Thames. He passed on to Waterloo Bridge, and sat himself down in one of the recesses, to wait until midnight had cleared the bridge of all passengers. The night was dark and cheerless. The rain began to DESPAIR. 165 pour down with steady vehemence. The passengers be- came rarer and rarer. The hour drew near. The time flew rapidly for him, although he was waiting. Plunged in thought — and that of the bitterest kind — he conjured up before him the phantoms of departed hopes, contrasting them with the realities which subdued him . His lot seemed hopeless. Isola lost. His literary career was blighted. He had failed; and justly. He felt that he had not genius enough to cope with the world, and had not strength enough to endure failure. The clock struck one, before he was aware of its being already midnight. This recalled him to himself. Look- ing carefully around him, and seeing no one on the bridge, he climbed upon the parapet. In another instant he would have quitted this intolerable world ; and the thought was bitterly sweet to him ! Before he could take the fatal leap he was pulled vio- lently to the ground, and on springing to his feet again, found himself face to face with the queer looking old man whom he had seen so often at the theatre. " Young man," said he, brusquely, " before you quit this world so ignominiously, answer me: have you done any thing which could make your life more ignominious still?" " What right have you to question me?" answered Eanthorpe, angrily and haughtily. " Never mind the right, say it is might. I choose to doit." " Leave me, sir, I insist upon it." " Not I. You shall listen to me." " Are you insane that you would trifle thus with a desperate man?" " Bah ! You know that if I choose to alarm the police 166 RANTHORPE. you will be taken before the magistrate for your present attempt. You see I wish you well; so be quiet. Now answer me : have you dishonoured your name ? have you done that which should make you shun the society of honest men? If so, quit this honest world at once. I will not bid you stay ! Bah I" Ranthorpe's anger was roused, and yet he felt strangely subdued by the old gentleman's sharp, short, brusque, honest manner. There was something at once command- ing and amiable about him, which made Ranthorpe listen to him. u Come, answer me." " Well, then, no: I have done nothing dishonourable." " Then what makes you quit an honourable world?" Ranthorpe was silent. " Well, what answer?" imperiously demanded the little man. "I am weary of life," replied Ranthorpe, forced to speak. " At your age? Bah ! Your play has failed, and you fear the ridicule attached to failure?" Ranthorpe assented. " And don't you see that you make yourself ten times more ridiculous by taking failure to heart? If to fail is weak — what is it to commit suicide on that account? Pitiable ! Contemptible ! Bah !" And in spite of Ranthorpe's mingled anger and shame, the old gentleman put his arm within his, and hurried him away, talking all the time in an energetic abrupt manner. " Don't let me hear of such trash ! Failure, what is it? A proof of incapacity? No; not a bit ! only a proof that the audience and you are in different regions, and don't DESPAIR. 167 understand each, other. Yours may be the region of darkness, certainly; but it may also be the region of such brilliant light that the boobies can no more see in it, than they can in. darkness: too much light is intolerable to owls. Who knows whether your failure be not more glorious than success? Bah! Did not the whole of the Philharmonic orchestra burst out into laughter the first time they played Beethoven? Was Beethoven then a paper- blotter, or a genius? What did their laughter prove ? — Their ignorance ! Bah !" And with this short, sharp, " bah!" the little man seemed to settle the whole question. " But, alas! I have not that consolation," said Kan- thorpe. " I feel that my tragedy deserved to fail." " Pooh ! you don't feel any thing of the kind ! No author ever did. The more the people damn, the more the author prizes his work. So do you; bah!" " I assure you I speak truly. Performance destroyed my illusions ; made me distinctly see the feebleness of my play. This tells me that I have mistaken my calling. I have a poet's ambition, but not the poet's genius." " Wrong! If you really see the faults of your play, that proves that you are superior to it. Understand ! su- perior to your failure — ergo, capable of success ! I had a play d — d once myself; didn't like it — but didn't des- pair, bah ! Try again; and don't be a coward !" 11 A coward !" u Coward ! I won't eat my words. A man who cannot endure failure, is an ass; the man who cannot face adver- sity, is a coward. You are neither; you are only led away by a moment's ill-temper. That's paltry, pitiable !" Ranthorpe felt he was at a disadvantage, and to excuse himself in t the opinion of his strange antagonist, he in- 168 RANTHORPE. formed him that tlie failure of his play was only the last drop that had filled the measure of his cup; and that life had now no charm, no hope for him. His voice was so sad as he said this, that the little old man stopped suddenly to look at him; and then said: " That's different. Open your heart to me. Tell me your story. I'm but a poor comforter; but there is always comfort in talking of one's sorrow. It makes the heart wander from its deeper woe ; as somebody says. Here we are at my house. Accept my hospitality, will you? That's right." Marvelling at the power acquired over him by this strange being, and at the curious denouement which seemed to present itself, Ranthorpe ascended the stairs with his new friend, and entered a handsomely fur- nished but somewhat bachelor-looking room, adorned with engravings, busts, casts, and books which indicated a cer- tain culture in the possessor. " Bring tumblers and hot water," said the little man to the servant ; and when she had left the room he turned to Ranthorpe, and said, " you smoke?" Ranthorpe nodded; but was perfectly amazed at the calm, matter-of-fact manner in which the question was put. He began to have suspicions of the little man's sanity. But he saw him proceed about every thing in the most orderly style. The spirit decanters, lemons, sugar, and all necessary materials for making punch, were soon on the table. A box of excellent cigars was pro- duced. In a little while a bowl of punch, brute, was flaming on the table; and the little man ladling it out calmly, bade Ranthorpe taste it. ' ' It's from a famous receipt I got in Germany. Nothing like it elsewhere. Bah !" , DESPAIR. 169 Ranthorpe tasted it; pronounced it delicious; lit a cigar; ensconced himself in an easy chair, and was sur- prised to find himself in a most unromantic and unde- spairing mood of mind ! He had been gradually dragged down to earth, by the sharp good sense and imper- turbable calmness of his new friend. And the soothing influence of tobacco, quickly completed what the old man had begun. Yes, there was no disguising it from himself, — lie was saved. The idea of suicide was supremely ridiculous in a man thus enjoying the common enjoyments of the world. And as he gazed at his queer looking friend, upon whose face the purple flames of the burning punch threw a fan- tastic light, and saw the calm content with which he was inhaling the fragrance of the soothing weed, he felt that, for the present at least, he must relinquish all idea of suicide. To rush from the scene of your ruined hopes, and in desperation die, is a foolish, but at least intelligible act. But after failure, to sit quietly down in an easy chair with a bowl of punch between you and your companion, and a cigar in your mouth, and to rise from this to com- mit suicide, would be too supremely laughable and con- temptible. He felt this ; for the ridiculous side of things rarely escapes imaginative people ; and no man intention- ally would mar the solemnity of his suicide. And well aware was the little old man of the inevitable effect of his maneeuvres; for a more sagacious head was never united to a kinder heart, than in the person of \ I Richard Thornton. As I said, he was a queer-looking little old fellow; and queer were his ways. A scratch- wig, which had never exhibited any lofty pretensions to verisimilitude or coquetry, sat carelessly upon a large 170 RANTHOKPE. head, the face being somewhat wizen and wrinkled. His eyes were brilliant, and shaded by thick shaggy brows; his nose would have been handsome, had it not been so pinched in at the nostrils ; his mouth was small, the upper lip short and curved, betokening a turn for irony. His complexion was somewhat snuff-coloured; his coat was of a dark snuff-colour ; his waistcoat ditto ; and altogether his appearance was quaint, yet prepossessing. His manner was a strange mixture of fidgettiness, imperiousness, and tenderness. He was evidently an old bachelor — had been a spoiled child — and had an overflowing source of benevolence in his heart. The sympathy he had from the first felt with Ran- thorpe, when he saw his play rehearsing, had been in- creased by finding that he was the author of ei The Dreams of Youth," which were favourites with the old gentleman ; and his own experience of failure made him at once the friend of every unsuccessful dramatist. This will explain the scrutiny with which Ranthorpe had been so displeased during rehearsals. He was trying to guess what strength the poet showed capable of sup- porting failure, if he should fail ; and the result of his scrutiny was so unfavourable, that he watched Ranthorpe from the theatre, and followed him, shrewdly suspecting his intention. They discussed the punch and the cigars, and talked of Germany, as if they were old friends. Mr. Thornton had lived at Weimar, and had known Gothe, of whom he loved to speak. " Ah ! he was a man; emphatically a man. He looked like a god, and the people always spoke of him as the Ger- man Jupiter; not simply because of his majestic presence, DESPAIE. 171 but because of the calm mastery over all the storms of life which was written on his brow. Napoleon, when he saw him, said with reverence ' C'est un homme! " " He seems to have been cold and calculating," said Ranthorpe. " Seems to you; perhaps so I Gothe was no whining poet. He knew what sorrow was — knew what dark thoughts assail the despairing soul — but he was not one of your weak set, who whine, and whine, and despair, and die. Gothe wrote ' Werther,' but he did not act it ! He struggled with his grief — threw it off from him — con- quered it — trampled on it like a strong man. No thoughts of Waterloo Bridge could gain mastery over him. Bah!" This was galling to Ranthorpe ; and was dangerous policy of the old man's. But he knew that nothing sud- den could be done, and determined to root out the idea of suicide. " Gothe, my young friend, was the last man in the world to deserve the epithet cold. What makes boobies call him so, is the magnificent supremacy which his reason always exercised over his passions; because he was not as weak as the weakest of poets and women would have wished him to be, he is said to have been cold. Bah ! He was a loving friend — a generous enemy — an in- imitable poet — only not a Werther. Take him as a model ; see how he lived and worked. From a wild youth growing into a great man, and till his eighty-third year preserving an unexampled intellect amidst almost unex- ampled activity. That is the man you authors should vene- rate and imitate ! He understood the divine significance of man's destiny — which is work. Man the worker is 172 RANTHORPE. the only man fit to live. "Work is the great element in which man breathes freely, healthily. Work is ines- timable delight — that which distinguishes us from the brute is our capacity for mental activity — and in this activity we find our greatest and purest pleasures." This was striking a responsive chord in the poet's heart. He saw the effect, and followed it up. Having gradually excited the poet's enthusiasm to the requisite pitch, he then abruptly asked him : st And now what do you think of suicide ?" " That it is ignoble — contemptible !" exclaimed Ran- thorpe. The little old man jumped up from his seat, hurled his humble scratch-wig up at the ceiling, capered about the room in an extraordinary manner, and then seizing Ran- thorpe's hand in both his, pressed them tenderly, and said : "Young man, young man, you have won my heart; you have done a good action ; you have — '* Here he was obliged to cough to conceal his emotion, and uttering his favourite " Bah !" picked up his wig, and reseated himself. He really felt that Ranthorpe had conferred an im- mense favour on him by consenting to live. If this should appear strange to any reader, he knows little of the benevolent heart. Mr. Thornton, whose fortune had been literally given away in charity, was too great an epicure in goodness not to feel keen delight in having been the instrument of Ranthorpe's preservation ; and when he had finally succeeded, he felt grateful for the delight received. He was, indeed, one of those rare but inestimable specimens of humanity who seem to have taken as their motto the lines of La Mothe : DESPAIK. 173 " Pour nous, sans interet obligeons les humains; Que ThoDneur de servir soit le prix du service; La vertu sur ce point fait un tour d'avarice, Elle se paye par ses mains." A race not yet extinct, whatever may be said by the commonplace declaimers respecting the egotism of our age; a race which may boast of a living represen- tative, in the wise, the happy, the benevolent Dr. Neil Arnott. BOOK IV. STRUGGLES WITH CIRCUMSTANCE. I will stand no more On others' legs, nor build one joy without me. If ever I be worth a house again I'll build all inward. G. Chapman : Ccesar and Pompey. ISOLA IN HER RETREAT. 177 CHAPTER I. ISOLA IN HER RETREAT. The pleasure that is in sorrow is sweeter than the pleasure of plea- sure itself. Shelley. Sorrow, they say, to one with true touch'd ear, Is but the discord of a warbling sphere, A lurking contrast, which, though harsh it be, Distils the next note more deliciously. Leigh Hunt. But all this time I have been neglecting Isola: not because I had forgotten her, but because sometimes, in the confidence of love, one treats friends with less atten- tion than acquaintances ; and so I consented to keep my heroine in the background till I could have a clear space for her to fill. This now is found. Nightingale Lane used to be one of the prettiest lanes about London.* It turned from the Kensington high- road, and ran up to Holland House, after which it branched into two paths, one leading to the Uxbridge Road, the •* Used to be, but is so no longer. It has recently become as prosaic a lane as London's environs can produce; at least until it reaches Hol- land House. N 178 KANTHORPE. other leading to Camden Hill. In this sweet lane, so poetically named from the number of nightingales, " Singing of summer in full-throated ease," the delightful spirit might really — to use the popular phrase — "fancy itself miles in the country:" it was, in truth— " A most melodious plot Of beechen green, and shadows numberless — " where foliage of every tint and shape, through which the sun streaked splendour — where " Verdurous glooms and winding mossy ways, enticed the sauntering footsteps to those " Murmurous haunts of flies on summer's eves." As you turned up from the noisy, dusty road, into this cool and leaf-strewed path, your eyes and ears were con- stantly delighted ; you caught occasional glimpses through the trees of Holland House, with its quaint architecture, looking a living record of the past, and strong with all the associations of a line of wits; your eye rested upon the lawn stretching its rich verdure before the house, giving pasture to " A few cattle, looking up aslant, With sleepy eyes and meek mouths ruminant." The birds were in the trees, making them " tremble with music," and the " heavy-gaited toad" hopped across the path. I know not why it is that lovely scenes — or even a bit of sunshine on a spot of green — or the gush of a rivulet through a deserted lane, always curiously affect me. These things " overcome me like a summer cloud" — stir- ISOLA IN HER RETREAT. 179 ring the depths of my soul ; and yet so vague and sha- dowy the impressions, that they seem more like the broken memories of many dreams uniting into one, than any dis- tinct reminiscence. Are others so affected? I know not. To me it seems as if all the happiest, idlest moments of my boyhood were dimly recalled; intense, although too dim for the mind to give them form. The murmuring of water recals fragments of many scenes where that murmur had before been heard; recalling, also, all the youth and buoyancy, the unused sensibility, the trusting affection and unfastidious taste, ready to be pleased, and pleased with all it saw; recalling the delicious loneliness of youth, when solitude was sought to people it with forms of the imagination — when the unspeakable emotions of a heart too full, could only be relieved by solitary brooding — when the melancholy of a mind, without a purpose, served to identify itself with the ongoings of external nature. These, and a thousand different associations, are ever recalled to me by the mere aspect of external beauty. On those occasions, as "Wordsworth sings of the daisy, " Oft on the dappled turf at ease, I sit and play with similes, Loose types of things through all degrees, Thoughts of thy raising. And many a fond and idle name I give to thee for praise or blame, As is the humour of the game, While I am gazing." Some such process of association was going on in the mind of Isola Churchill, as she slowly sauntered up Nightingale Lane, with a placid smile on her pale and delicate face, weaving " fancies rich and rare," or watch- ing the green frog springing into the lush weeds that grew n2 180 RANTHORPE. on the hedge side ; or allowing her thoughts to lead her to the happy past. She thought of her childhood and her early love ; with this love her memory wantoned, and would not quit its sweet familiar details ; till, at last, her thoughts were irre- sistibly driven to the subject of her first and lasting misery — her outraged affection. Ah! what a change! from thoughts of bliss suddenly recalled to that state Coleridge so finely describes as " Grief without a pang, void, dark, and drear, A stifled, drowsy, unimpassion'd grief, Which finds no natural outlet, no relief, In word, or sigh, or tear." This sudden recollection of a constant grief, from whose oppression she had escaped for a little breathing time, made Isola turn into her house with a shiver; and without taking off her bonnet and shawl, she threw herself into a chair, to probe the depths of her own wretchedness, and thus find out its limits, or else to wring a pleasure from her pain. The "luxury of grief" is a curious paradox; but it is an incontestable fact. The morbid dwelling on some hateful matter is a diseased delight; but it is a delight. In certain natures the craving for sensation is so intense, that if pleasurable sensations are unattainable, painful ones are sought, for the sake of the sensation. In moral pain, there is a feeling of existence, which, on some frames, acts pleasurably. This is a fact, explain it as we may. I have no doubt that sulky people, from the constant brooding over the offence they sulk at, extract a real pleasure, greater than any reconciliation could afford. They hug themselves in their martyrdom — they make themselves miserable, and delight in the sensation. They stimulate their minds to activity by the constant pricking of a sore place. ISOLA IN HER RETREAT. 181 When we have real cause for grief, we are too apt to accept of the excuse it affords for the indulgence of this morbid feeling; and hence the profound advice of Jean Paul, that the first thing to be conquered in grief, is the pleasure we feel in indulging in it. This curious fact explains how many people of extreme sensibility have been thoroughly heartless, and how it is very easy to shed floods of tears over the loss, over the misfortune of another, without ever having really loved the person. The tendency to dwell on grief is greater in women than in men: firstly, because of their greater sensibility; and secondly, because of the monotony of their lives. In the hurry of business, or in attention to study, grief is quickly blunted and forgotten ; but, in the monotony of women's lives, the indulgence serves to fill the weary hours with a vivid sensation. Isola had this malady of the mind, only in a slight de- gree; but she had real cause for grief, and her solitude excused it. Forlorn and without hope, she found herself wronged and deserted by him on whom she had bestowed her heart. She toiled for her daily bread ; and knew not why she toiled, for life to her was cheerless. Yet, no : not cheerless ! She said so ; but it was not so. She had still her quick-pulsing youth and ardent faculties ; she had still her dreams and her remembrances ; when she read his verses her heart fluttered as of old — and life to her was precious ! On that day which I selected as proper for her re-appearance on this scene, and while probing with relentless hand the wounds of her affections, her eye me- chanically wandered round the room, and rested on the various water-colour drawings which adorned the walls; and as her eye thus rested on the work of her own in- 182 RANTHOKPE. dustry, the current of her thoughts was changed, and flowed into that art she loved so well, and to which she owed her modest subsistence. Art is a perpetual blessing — a household god of peace- ful, holy influence — chastening the worldly, and exalting the aspiring ; as Keats sings, "A thing of "beauty is a joy for ever, Its loveliness increaseth;" and with its increase grows its divine influence. No one accustomed to sit surrounded with books and pictures can have failed to remark the influence they exercise upon the currents of thought; whichever way the eye is turned those objects meet it, and their inexhaustible associations fill the mind with beauty. Isola felt this influence as she gazed, and the Ithuriel spear of beauty healed her wound at a touch. In a few minutes, her heart was light, her mind active, and her face quiet with smiles. The history of her life, from that fatal day when she overheard Percy declare his passion to Florence Wilming- ton to the period at which we again meet with her, is briefly told. In her despair, she left her situation, without commu- nicating to any one her design or her destination. It pained her to be separated from Fanny; but she wished to separate herself from all that could recal her passion, and from all that could possibly lead to the discovery of her retreat. She took an humble lodging in Nightingale Lane; and, when the first torrent of her grief had passed, debated what course she should pursue. An orphan, she had no one to guide her, no one to protect her. After a little while, she wrote to Fanny, disclosing the secret of her sorrow and present condition. In an instant, ISOLA IN HER RETREAT. 183 Fanny was by her side, and had to make her confidence. Strange tricks of fate that had made these two young creatures waste their hearts upon an ingrate ! I need not say this new confidence forged another link of sympathy and affection between them. Isola had determined to turn her wonderful power of drawing to account; and Fanny gladly undertook to get these drawings sold, and sold well, amongst her con- nexions. Thus Isola became an artist, and created for herself a slender but sufficient subsistence. 184 RANTHORPE. CHAPTER II. THE ARTIST. Handelt einer mit Honig, er leckt zuweilen die Finger. Beinecke Fuchs. My Dionyza, shall we rest us here, And by relating tales of other's griefs, See if 'twill teach us to forget our own? Shakspea.be : Pericles of Tyre. By the pencil Isola lived ; by the pencil she contrived to satisfy her wants. Small indeed must those wants have been to be supplied from such a source ; but she was as prudent as she was diligent, and seldom knew the sharp pangs of hunger, except when she purchased them by a weakness for — art. She was a true artist, however humble her talent of exe- cution ; she had the genuine feeling and o'ermastering en- thusiasm which only artists know. Whenever she had succeeded in executing a painting of more than ordinary beauty — whenever she had thrown more of her own feel- ings than usual, into any work — she could not prevail upon herself to part with it ; and although the need for the money she might receive for it, was often very great, yet she could not let her prudence overcome her enthusiasm, she could not consent to sell her poetry, to part with her THE ARTIST. 185 creations as merchandise : so she kept it, and lived upon a crust till another was finished. Many will sneer at this as folly, some will sympathise with it as rarest wisdom. When the time of want had passed away, the " thing of beauty" remained to her, and was a " joy for ever." It graced her walls, and gladdened her thoughts. There are thousands who pinch themselves for the sake of a little extra ostentation, and may not one poor enthusiast do the same for beauty, without a sneer ? Think of this lovely creature, with no companions but her books and pictures, and ask yourself: was she not wise thus to store up enjoyment for herself? Think of this enthusiastic girl dwelling for hours delighted over her own creations — expressing the unspeakable tenderness of her soul in the handling of a flower, or in the branches of a tree rustled by the wind ; think of her using her art, not for the poor recompense of money, or adulation, but as the process whereby she symbolised her innermost feel- ing — feelings she would shrink from expressing otherwise — thoughts which she dared not utter, but which in the unreserved confidence of art she could form into symbols ; think of her fondly watching this creative process and loving her realised self: and then think of the pangs it caused her to part with these symbols when perfected; never to see them more, knowing that they were to go before eyes that could not read them, minds that could not comprehend them ! With the painter it is otherwise than with the poet : the latter does not sell away his work, but only the right of printing and publishing his work; he has it always with him ; the painter parts for ever from his work. To those who look on art as a clever manipulation — as alas ! too many are inclined to look on it — this conduct will seem ridiculous, and this symbolising 186 EANTHORPE. of her feelings a mere phantasy : it is so to them. Only so much as the mind knows can the eye see; only so much as the mind perceives in any object, can it attempt to represent. Some painters talk fatiguingly of the " imi- tation of nature;" whereas art is not a daguerreotype, but the reproduction of what the mind sees in nature. It is in proportion to the faculty of poetic vision, that a Claude transcends a mere tableau de genre. As an imitation of nature in the literal sense, all landscapes are bungles ; in the poetical sense there is no question about imitation, but about reproduction. I once saw a sketch by Salvator Rosa of a mere ravine, with one stunted tree bursting from a mound, and twirling its branches round a piece of rock, that has haunted me ever since, while of five thou- sand so-called " landscapes" no glimmering remains. There is a sentiment in every picture, however rude, that comes from the hand of a true artist. A cottage, with the smoke curling from its small chimney, losing itself in a clear atmosphere, may be either very poetical or very com- monplace, according to the mind of the painter. All the correctness of tone, colouring, and perspective in the world, are nothing, unless the poet's magic give the whole that grace, impossible to be defined, but by all distinctly felt. The difference between an imitation of nature, and an artistic conception of nature, may be stated by two exam- ples: Denner and Raphael. Denner copied every hair and freckle ; looking at the human face with a microscope, he anticipated the effects of the daguerreotype : his works are glorious specimens of industry, while those of Raphael are the most glorious specimens of art, and are truly " joys for ever." So when I say that Isola in her humble way created — that she, too, was a poet — it is intelligible how she should THE AKTIST. 187 love her pictures which were symbols of her feelings. Art was her passion : it was " That blessed mood In which the burthen of the mystery, In which the heavy and the weary weight Of all this unintelligible world Is enlightened." This passion served at least to soften the pangs of wounded affection and to reconcile her to life. Time, the consoler, poured his balm upon her wounds, and she became at last almost happy; only recurring with bitterness to the past, upon peculiar occasions, when she would brood over her sorrow, till called insensibly away again by her pictures. She had renounced the world, and the world's pleasures, for the solitary, happy, active life of an artist. And she was happy with her books, her pictures, and her dog. I have as yet had no time to say a word about the faithful Leo, a superb Newfoundland dog, who as a pup had followed her home (she had not the heart to prevent him), and who had now grown into a noble companion and protector; but though I have till now neglected him, he occupied too large a place in her quiet existence for me to pass him over entirely. There was something about the calm grandeur and candid lovingness of the dog, which accorded mar- vellously with the bearing of his mistress ; and as she stood sometimes with her hand upon his upturned head, they formed a group which a Phidias might have envied. Leo .was of course the companion of her walks ; and while she read or painted he sat at her feet, watching her with calm lovingness, and occasionally thrusting his head into her hand to solicit a caress. He not only alleviated her sense of loneliness, but often prevented her sitting at home all day, instead of taking invigorating exercise, for she oftener went out on his account than on her own. 188 RANTHORPE. CHAPTER III. As mine own shadow was this child to me, A second self far dearer, and more fair. * * * * This playmate sweet was made My sole associate, and his willing feet Wander'd with mine, where earth and ocean meet. * * * * And warm and light I felt his clasping hand When twined in mine. We, two, were ne'er Parted, but when brief sleep divided us. Shelxey. But, after all, the artist cannot live wholly for his art : human affections and human infirmities irresistibly chain him to the world from which he would flee. So Isola could not live without affections. However the peculiarity of her position might induce her to shun communication with all former friends, yet the very sym- pathy and sensibility which made her an artist, made her pant the more for human intercourse. The heart of woman is a fountain of everlasting love; without love it dies, with love alone it rests contented. It craves some object on which to pour the pent-up floods of its affection. The object may be fantastic, the passion may woman's love. 189 be curiously distorted; but the craving must be satisfied in some way. Observe how in old maids this distorted affection, cut off from its natural channel, manifests itself in the extravagant attachment to some cat or parrot : this has its ridiculous side, but it has also a poetical one, for it is a symbol of that undying love women were created to perpetuate. Isola loved her art, but she panted also for something human; something whose wants and infirmities, appealing to her pity, would stir the sacred waters of her heart ; something to protect with lavish love. This she found in a neighbour's child, a chubby boy of five years old, with sparkling eyes, dimpled cheeks, and ringing laugh. Wo- men are by nature fond of all children ; and when these youngsters are well behaved and pretty, they are so fasci- nating that one may really be excused any extravagant dotage. Who can refuse the petition of a chubby boy ? Who can resist the stammering request? Who can be angry at a spirited petulance, which, though loudly qualified as "very naughty," is secretly admired? Who can help being moved with the sharp joyous laugh, the inexhausti- ble faculty of amusement, the absorbing curiosity and astonishing impudence of children ? It is impossible ; you can never yourself have been a child to do so ; or else you have been crammed with hornbooks and instructive dia- logues in the nursery, till you became dyspeptic and pre- mature. In the lane where Isola lived, she had often met with a chubby, rosy boy, of five years old, whose beauty and winning ways had gradually won her affections. Meeting him almost daily, she began to look upon him as a younger brother. Having nothing else to love, she soon 190 RANTHORPE. loved him, and with an absorbing affection. He always called her " sister Isola," was always the first to greet her when she came out, and in a little time had established himself in her heart, no less than in that of Leo. Little Walter became Isola's joy and idol ; on his edu- cation and amusement she expended all her leisure hours ; and the little fellow touched, as are all noble boys, by kindness, used to obey her to the letter. She had rarely to scold him : to tell him he had done wrong was enough to send tears into his eyes ; and even if he repeated the offence — and what child does not? he was always more sorry at having disobeyed her, than at the standing in the corner to which she condemned him. Touching it was to see the affection of these two creatures for each other — both so young and loving; the one with sunshine always in his face, the other with a cast of pensiveness, which gave " Elysian beauty, melancholy grace," to her sweet countenance. Hers was essentially a motherly heart. Her own strong nature did not need that protection for which woman mostly looks to man; but needed, on the contrary, something feebler to cherish and protect. Her love for Ranthorpe had always been greatly mingled with this feeling ; she had early divined his weak, wayward, and somewhat womanly nature, and in their childhood and youth had been an elder sister to him. She foresaw dimly that he would need her support in his battle with the world ; and with all her veneration for his intellect, she felt somewhat towards him as a mother feels for an idolised child of genius. His weakness and waywardness, which would have shocked, perhaps disenchanted another woman, only made her heart yearn more towards him. woman's love. j 191 Conceive then the delight she must have felt in little Wal- ter. She was now no longer alone in the world : and if, as they wandered through the lanes, his tiny hand in hers 3 or as she watched him romping with Leo, she sometimes sighed to think she had not for him a mother's claims as she had a mother's tenderness ; still the constant delight of being with him, thinking of him, purchasing toys for him, and telling him stories, kept her feelings in such active play, that she soon recovered her former elasticity of spirits. Walter's mother was in narrow circumstances, and had three other children, and she was very sensible of Isola's kindness to her boy — what mother is not so ? and was always pleased that he should be with her. Isola taught him to read. Great was her delight at his pride when he jumped about or strutted with importance " worn in its gloss," as he informed every body, that " he knew another line, and could spell it all." With Isola he rambled through the lanes and fields/ weaving fantastic garlands of wild flowers, or showering them upon her in his sport. With her he sat while she was painting, and in grave silence daubed some paper with paint brushes, that he might imitate his darling sister (as he called her) and " play at painting." Often would she look up from her work, and catch the little fellow mocking her attitude with sly gravity, while laughter peeped from under his eye-lids ; and then she could never resist pinching his chubby cheeks, and throw aside the pencil for a game of romps. \ Or on a summer's evening, after their usual stroll, — or when the rain kept them within doors, she would amuse him with those stories which captivated our infancy, but which the next generation stands a fair chance of not hearing ; unless a stop be put to the monstrous pedantic 192 RANTHORPE. absurdities now in fashion with respect to education:* absurdities promulgated by the greatest set of dolts that ever obtained a bearing ; which hearing they obtained by dint of a rotten sophism. It is not enough that " Goody Two Shoes," " Jack the Giant Killer," or the hero of the " Bean Stalk," should ruthlessly be converted into moral tales — (as if children were to be made virtuous by maxims — and, ye gods ! such maxims !) — it is not enough that men should so grossly blunder as to suppose life a scheme that could be taught, instead of a drama that must be acted ; — it is not enough that the affections, sympaifries, and imagination are considered " frivolous," and reading or hearing stories " sad waste of time;" — these are trifles, " the worst is yet to come." Children must be taught "sciences and useful knowledge;" babies of three or four years old are to have the le steam- engine, familiarly explained." Infants are to be called in from trundling the hoop, to con over the mysteries of che- mical and astronomical phenomena " adapted to the meanest capacity." As in Hood's exquisite parody of George Robins' advertisement, the pump is enumerated as having " a handle, within reach of the smallest child" so do our illustrious educators wish to place the pump of know- ledge within reach of the meanest capacity, that in- fants may forego the mother's milk to drink of its Pierian spring. Is this credible? In a sane country is it credible that chemistry, geology, astronomy, and theology should be * Since this was written a change has taken place and in the right direction, headed by the active and tasteful Felix Summerly. Thanks to him, and to Mr. Cundall, the publisher of children's books, in Bond Street, we have now the best old stories illustrated by artists of repu- tation, and excellent new stories written by men of genius. woman's love. ;193 " adapted to the infant mind," and the infant mind em- bedded in this mass of indigested nonsense ? Most wise doctors I Most credulous parents! Most unhappy children ! To you all, a blessed millennium of science is coming, wherein imagination and emotion will no more vitiate the mind ; wherein " prejudices" will be matters of research, and the differential calculus be ex- pounded to the infant in the cradle! — A time when " gentle maidens reading through their tears" will feel their hearts tremble over — conic sections ; romantic youths will feel their breasts inflated with the mystery and magic of — the composition of forces ; and happy men have all their sympathies enlarged by eccentric orbits ! Then will the air be filled with sighs of " definite proportions;" and the dance — theatre — and pic-nic, give place to scientific meetings. Then will the budding rose of womanhood meet her chosen one, beneath the mystic moon, and pour forth her feelings on the atomic theory : her lover answer- ing in impassioned descriptions of stalactite and strata ! This millennium is still, however, distant: as we thank- fully acknowledge. Isola had no sort of sympathy with it. Her instinct, rather than her reason, told her that the child must feel before it can know ; and that knowledge, great and glorious as it is, can never be the end of life : it is but one of the many means. ) She, therefore, fed his insatiate appetite with stories of human sympathies, sufferings, virtues, and prowess — fairy tales, and legends gay and sad. He listened with open mouth and staring eyes, occasionally filled with tears: precious drops ! so necessary to encourage in the egotisti- cal period of infancy ; which is egotistical because it knows no other joys and pains than those it suffers; and when she ended, he would exclaim, " Tell it again ! tell it again !" o ] 94 EANTHORPE. Tell it again ! — what a contrast with the listless, restless mind which a few years afterwards cannot read a book nor hear a story told a second time; — which craves for some- thing " new," though the only novelty be in the title ! Tell it again ! — In those words the riches of childhood are revealed ; it is in childhood only that we do not weary of the twice-told tale or the twice-felt emotion. " Let us go and kill giants," he would say, after listen- ing to the exploits of that Achilles of private life, "Jack the Giant Killer." " Buy me a fairy, sister Isola, will you?" he often entreated. (i I'll be very good." And thus they lived and loved. They were the world to each other, and beyond that world they did not care to move. There was in her love an intensity — an anxiety which differed, in its unhealthiness, from a mother's love. Isola loved a child that was not her own, and that might at any time be separated from her : no wonder, then, that she was fretful and anxious. THE WOOF IS WEAVING. 195 CHAPTER IV. THE WOOF IS WEAVING. Miserable creature, If thou persist in this 'tis damnable. Dost thou imagine thou can'st slide on blood And not be tainted with a shameful fall? Or, like the black and melancholic yew-tree, Dost think to root thyself in dead men's graves And yet to prosper. Webster : The White Devil. When Ranthorpe awoke, the morning after the night of his failure, he felt almost angry with Mr. Thorn- ton for his benevolent interference. He awoke to find himself once more robbed of his illusions. He had again failed ; his greatest effort to win a name had been received with derision. Would it ever be otherwise ? Had he sufficient courage to act upon Mr. Thornton's advice? He doubted his own energy. The intense excitement of the preceding night had now, in its reaction, unnerved him. He felt listless, hopeless, lifeless. Mr. Thornton called early. His conversation for a while revived the drooping spirits of his young friend; but on his taking leave, they sank again. Harry had made one or two efforts at consolation; but soon gave up the attempt as 02 196 EANTHOKPE. fruitless. He was, in truth, himself too much distressed at his friend's failure, to be an effectual consoler. In the course of the afternoon a letter was put into Ranthorpe's hands : a mere glance at the superscription made his heart and temples throb violently, and he held it some minutes before him, unable to open it. It was from Isola, and ran thus: " My ever beloved Peecy, — I was at the theatre last night ! That will tell you how much I suffered and still suffer. The manner in which your play was acted, would have ruined the finest work ; and I perfectly hated the actors ! Every applause made my heart beat ; every hiss made it sick ; and when I left the house — but I can- not write of it ! " Now, Percy, now do you most need all your strength — now must you wrap yourself up in the proud conscious- ness of your genius, and the assurance of its ultimate recognition, and not suffer failure to daunt your aspiring soul. Despise the injustice of the world; do not let it make you swerve one inch out of your path. Last night I felt despondent — unutterably despondent. To-day I feel that despondency is weakness, even in me; and that you will not, cannot, let it prey long upon you. Think of how often the greatest men have been misjudged, but how surely has the world revoked its hasty verdict. Think of your own works, and compare them with works which have succeeded, and then see how little the accident of one failure can affect your hopes. " Above all things resist despondency. Wring what lesson you will out of this unhappy night, but only beware of attributing too much importance to it. Rise up against it ; look it courageously in the face, and say: I have failed, but I will succeed. THE WOOF IS WEAVING. 197 " Will to do it, and it is done. That you have genius you cannot doubt; but genius itself is powerless, unless accompanied by strength of will. Fortitude of mind is perhaps the greatest characteristic of every great man; and that you will be great I feel deeply convinced, if you can but summon sufficient courage to trust wholly to yourself. "This was all I intended to say; but it is in vain I strive to master my feelings. While pointing to the future, I cannot help recurring to the painful past. Be- sides, it would look unkind. If I made no allusion to the past, you might fancy it was from coldness, or pride, or anger. I feel nothing of the kind ; and be assured that whatever it may have cost me to own myself no longer your affianced bride, I have now learned to endure my lot with patient calmness. I forgive you, Percy; I have long forgiven you. It was no fault of yours that I was less loveable than another. " Be great, be happy ! that is the constant wish of your devoted sister, Isola. "P. S. — You will understand my motives in keeping my present residence a secret. Do not endeavour to de- tect it. I could not see you; I have not sufficient strength. When you are married — then perhaps ; but now I feel that I must avoid your presence. God bless you !" This letter, meant to be so calm, was scarcely legible from the tears she had let fall upon it; and Percy felt as he read it a mixed sensation of pain and rapture : of pain, because he felt how much she suffered; of rapture because he felt she loved him still. It awoke him from his lethargy; it gave life a value, and a purpose. He would not rest until he had discovered her, and not only obtained her pardon, but her hand. 198 RANTHORPE. He, who a few minutes ago was despairing of ever gain- ing a livelihood by his pen, was now all eagerness to gain a wife. The post-mark was Camberwell. He instantly set off for Camberwell, and went to the various post-offices there, certain to learn from the letter-carriers Miss Church- ill's address. After many disappointments, he at last was told where a Miss Churchill lived. He went there, and found an old maid, who received him with some embar- rassment, but whose embarrassment was ease itself com- pared with his, when he discovered the mistake, stam- mered an apology, and rushed out of the house. His search was fruitless. He became at length con- vinced that Camberwell had been chosen as the place for posting the letter, simply to mislead him as to Isola's real abode. How was he to discover it?" Every day of the ensuing fortnight, at the top of the first page of the " Times," appeared this advertisement: " IsOLA is solemnly implored to communicate with P. R." But Tsola never saw the "Times;" never saw any newspaper. Had she seen this advertisement, she would assuredly have written again; but Percy, exasperated by her silence, which he could not understand — never sus- pecting that she had not seen his advertisement — resigned himself to his fate. Her letter had, however, produced the desired effect. It had drawn him from brooding despondency — it had restored him his former energy and ambition. Mr. Thorn- ton had, in his benevolent desire to secure the safety of his new protege, offered him the situation of private secre- tary at a salary of one-hundred-and-fifty pounds a-year. Mr. Thornton dabbled in literature, and had made collections for a " History of the Drama," which he proposed that THE WOOF IS WEAVING. 199 Percy should assist him in arranging in due order, and seeing through the press. The proposal was accepted with thankfulness; and leaving his old lodgings, he was quickly installed in Mr. Thornton's house. He was as comfortable in his new situation as it was possible, considering his uncertainty about Isola. After a little while, he followed Mr. Thornton's advice, and accepted Rixelton's offer to write again the theatrical critiques in his paper. Ranthorpe wished to study the art of the stage, and this office of critic, would, he thought, be beneficial to him in that respect. How much he really learned in this way it is impossible to guess; but he was very assiduous in his attendance, and very careful in his criticisms. Let us leave him at his new avocation to return to a personage introduced early in this history, but of whom we have hitherto had no interest in following through the downward stages of dissipation and blackguardism. Oliver Thornton — the medical student, whom Ranthorpe saw in company with Harry Cavendish, in our first chapter — was the nephew of old Mr. Thornton. He now re-appears upon the stage as a confirmed specimen of the genus blackguard. When first we saw him, he was to all appearance no worse than his fellow-student Harry. Both were " fast fellows." Both spent more time in saloons and cider-cellars than in the lecture-room or hospital. But now, while Harry had gradually been emerging from the slang and coarseness of the medical student, and, growing older, had grown more like the gentleman nature intended him to be, though still with too nr\ich of the old leaven in him; Oliver had been as gradually sinking deeper and deeper into the mire, till his only fitting atmosphere seemed to be 200 RANTHOEPE. that of night-houses and gaming-tables. In that foul marsh, where Harry, like so many of his comrades, had, in the exuberance of youth, "sown his wild oats," Oliver had rooted his whole existence. Mr. Thornton was one evening sitting alone (Ranthorpe was at the theatre), discussing a tumbler of his famous punch, when Oliver, who had not been near him for some months, walked into the room. He was not very well pleased to see his nephew; he never was. But a well directed compliment respecting the savour of the punch, caused him to ring the bell, order another tumbler, and prepare to be as amiable as his knowledge of the character of Iris nephew would permit. " Pray, when do you intend to pass the college?" asked the uncle, after a while. " Oh ! very shortly. I shall 'grind? " " Grind ?" " Yes; go to Steggall — he grinds chaps for the college in no time. Never fear I I shall work like a beggar." " Had you not better work like a surgeon ?" " You know what I mean. I suppose you intend to stand the needful, uncle ?" "Not I. Your ways of life have displeased me. — Bah!" "What ways of life?" " Your ways ; debauchery, idleness, dishonour. You stare; — you try to look like indignant virtue. It won't' do. I have heard all about you." " What have you heard ?" " Why, one thing as a sample, you seduced a servant girl. Don't deny it ! It is not that I blame so much. I have been young myself, and servants are not Lucretias." Oliver's face brightened. It lowered again as his uncle THE WOOF IS WEAVING. 201 proceeded — " But if an excuse can be found for that, none can be found for your subsequent treatment. She had a child; that child you disowned; you refused to give a far- thing towards its support; and that, too, at a time when you were constantly wheedling me out of money to feed your extravagances. Bah ! pitiable ! — contemptible ! You see I know all. Don't wonder then, if, from this moment, my purse is shut against you as my heart is. Extra- vagance — folly — debauchery, I could forgive, as the wild errors of youth. But unkindness — dishonourable conduct — and to a poor, wretched victim whom you had ruined — that, sir, neither belongs to the errors of youth, nor to the organisation of a gentleman. — Bah !" The old gentleman had warmed himself into a passion at the mere contemplation of his nephew's conduct. Oliver was silent, uneasy. " You have lost all claim upon me, sir; except that of being my brother's son. What little I can leave you when I die, may be yours, if you reform ; but if I find you pur- suing your present career, be assured that 1 shall leave that little to a more worthy man." " To your secretary, perhaps," suggested Oliver, with a sneer. " Yes : in all probability. I have a real regard for him ; for you I have none." "Thank 'ye," said Oliver, rising, and taking his hat. " Then I suppose I may look upon the succession as booked ? Your brother's son, of course, can't pretend to so much regard as a stranger ?" " Oliver, I do not forget you are my brother's son ; do not you forget it. Let his name be preserved from disgrace. I repeat it : if you reform, you shall not want. 202 KANTHOKPE. What I can leave shall be yours. I do this for your father's sake — not yours. But continue to lead your present life, and I disown and disinherit you. Bah !" Oliver felt a strong temptation to commit some vio- lence ; but restraining himself, as he saw the impossi- bility of escaping detection, he held out his hand, promised reformation, and quitted the house in a fit of sullen rage. C 'D — n him!" he muttered, " I shall be done, if he doesn't shortly hop the twig? And he continued his walk, grimly speculating on his uncle's death. " He knows too much" — thought Oliver — "a great deal too much. If he should find out that affair at Epsom" (he alluded to a disgraceful case of swindling in which he had been implicated), "it is all up with me — no legacy. D — n him ! What an old frump he is ! And to think that I am his heir. If he would only break his neck !" He continued his walk homewards, occupied with these dark thoughts; speculating on the advantages he should derive from his uncle's death ; and on the danger he incurred of being disinherited, if his uncle did not shortly die. On awaking the next morning, the same thoughts presented themselves to him. They pursued him through the day. That night he dreamt that his uncle had been murdered. He awoke greatly disappointed. All that day, and all the next, this one current of thought was scarcely interrupted. His uncle's death soon became a fixed idea with him. It fascinated him — haunted him. Vague thoughts of murder had tempted his soul, but were shndderingly evaded. They returned, THE WOOF IS WEAVING. 203 again and again, and at length were evaded without horror. They became familiar: from that moment they became dangerous ! The idea of murder, which had become familiar to his mind, was soon to be converted into a resolution. He tampered with his conscience and his fears ; he fought against the growing resolution, feeling that it would be fatal to him ; he endeavoured, in new orgies, to drown the desperate thoughts which haunted him. But it was too late. The idea had become a fixed idea. He must either become a murderer or a monomaniac ! The tyrannous influence of fixed ideas — of thoughts which haunt the soul, and goad the unhappy wretch to his perdition — is capable, I think, of a physiological no less than of a psychological explanation. Some fearful thought presents itself, and makes, as people figuratively say, a deep impression. By a law of our nature, it is the tendency, almost invincible, of all thoughts connected with that fearful one — either acci- dentally or inherently connected with it — to recal it when- ever they arise. This association of ideas therefore prevents the thought from evanescing. In proportion to the horror or interest inspired by that thought, will be the strength of the tendency to recurrence. The brain may be then said to be in a state of partial inflammation, owing to the great affluence of blood in one direction. And precisely as the abnormal affluence of blood towards any part of the body will produce chronic inflammation, if it be not diverted, so will the current of thought in excess in any one direction produce monomania. Fixed ideas may thus be physiologically regarded as chronic inflammations of the brain. Reader ! this digression is not idle. If you find your- 204 RANTHORPE. self haunted by any ideas which you would fain shake off, remember that the only effectual way to rid yourself of them is one somewhat analogous to that practised for inflammation of the body. You must draw the current of your thoughts elsewhere. You must actively, healthily, employ your mind and your affections. You must create fresh associations with such things as have a tendency to recal the thoughts you would evade. Let the mind recover its elasticity by various activity, and you are safe. Had Oliver plunged into fresh dissipations before the idea of murder had become a fixed one — before the inflammation had become chronic — then he might have been saved. But he tried it too late. The dull morn- ings following debauchery only left him an easier prey to his fierce thoughts ; while the extravagances which made money more and more necessary, served to place his uncle's death in more advantageous colours to him. I cannot follow him through all the struggles his fears and conscience held with this fascinating idea of murder. Enough if I state that it at length subdued him. It seemed to him as if there were no alternative between his going to the dogs, and murdering his uncle. But of course his uncle's death was a means, not an end. He had no vengeance to satisfy ; he had no particular hatred towards his uncle ; he only wanted his money. His object therefore was to remove an obstacle, without drawing any suspicion upon himself. Oliver was extremely* cunning, and as unprincipled. His whole thoughts were now directed towards forming some plan whereby he might escape suspicion. Poison in any shape would not prevent suspicion, because he would not be able to prove his absence from the scene. To hit THE WOOF IS WEAVING. 205 upon some plan which should absolve him from all danger, and, the more effectually to do so, to throw the suspicion upon another, was the problem to be solved. Many plans were thought of; but none were free from danger. " Murder will out," and in so many ways, that the most ingenious cannot foresee all the trivial circumstances which give the clue. At length his plan was perfected. 206 RANTHOEPE. CHAPTER V. NIGHT OF THE MURDER. Threescore and ten I can remember -well; "Within the volume of which time I've seen Hours dreadful and things strange; but this sore night Hath trifled former knowings. Shakspeaee. " Sad piece of extravagance, that of wearing pumps in the day-time," said Mr. Thornton to his nephew, as they were sitting together awaiting tea, on that evening chosen by Oliver for his desperate act. Oliver smiled as he answered: "Oh, they're an old pair, quite unfit for parties, and the weather is so warm." " Well, well, it's no business of mine, to be sure; only as you have determined on a thorough reformation (excel- lent determination, too, and will gain your uncle's heart), it seems to me that extravagance in dress — " " But, my dear uncle, it's economy. You would not have me throw them away because they're too shabby for dinner-parties and ' hops,' would you?" Mrs. Griffith, the housekeeper, entered at that moment, to say something to Mr. Thornton. " Good day, Mrs. Griffith," said Oliver, glad of this opportunity of procuring a witness of his amity with his NIGHT OF THE MURDER. 207 uncle. " Come, look approvingly, Mrs. Griffith — encou- rage me in virtue. See now good uncle is ! I have com- menced my reform — am going to become a respectable member of society — and uncle's going to celebrate the prodigal nephew's return with a bowl of his inimitable punch I" Mrs. Griffith was all smiles. She always knew Mr. Oliver was a good young gentleman, and told Mr. Thornton so. She thought that young men would be young men; but that Mr. Oliver would be sure to be steady, after a while. " Thank'ye, Mrs. Griffith," replied Oliver, highly- pleased with his success; "but now I must give you a little trouble — and that is, to find my 6 Astley Cooper's Lectures,' which I left here some months ago, and you said you had put away for me." " That's true, Mr. Oliver; I'll get it immediately/' Mrs. Griffith returned empty-handed, declaring that the book was not where she fancied she had placed it, and that it must have been put away somewhere else. A strange look of triumph might have been observed in Oliver's eyes at this point. He wanted to search the house, in company with one of the servants, as a proof that no one could have been concealed there. " Well, before I go I will have a rummage with you, Mrs. Griffith," he said; " don't trouble yourself now. I shall know the book among a thousand — a mere glimpse is enough for me." A merry evening was spent over the punch. Oliver was all amiability, and contrived to draw his uncle into telling many of his famous stories, at which both laughed heartily. Oliver was determined the servants should hear the laughter, so kept the door open, on pretext 208 RANTHOKPE. of tlie heat. He succeeded; for when Mrs. Griffith came up again, she remarked upon their merriment. ei By the bye, now, Mrs. Griffiths, if you are at your lei- sure we will have our rummage." The proposal was accepted; the house was searched; every cupboard was opened, they looked under every sofa, and into every hole and corner. The book was not found, simply because Oliver had already abstracted it. But something else was found — at least by him. As Mrs. Griffith went up to look in one of the attics, Oliver darted into Ranthorpe's room. He opened the drawer of the looking-glass, and took a razor out of its case. He then carefully shut the drawer, concealed the razor in his pocket, and hastily followed Mrs. Griffith. Giving up the search as fruitless, they returned to the drawing-room, where Oliver said he would take one more glass of punch with his uncle, and then go home, as it was getting late. The punch was drunk ; Oliver rose to depart, shook his uncle's hand warmly, and ran rapidly down stairs, opened the door, and slammed it with some violence. But he had shut himself in ! The servants would all swear they heard him go — heard him " shut the door after him." Yet he had simply shut the. door before him. Creeping stealthily into the back parlour (the use of his thin pumps is now betrayed !) he noiselessly con- cealed himself under the sofa. His uncle retired to bed ; the servants followed — the housemaid alone was waiting up for Ranthorpe, who was at the theatre. Oliver waited in fearful impatience. Every thing had succeeded hitherto ; his plan seemed to succeed even in its smallest details. But the perilous moment was to come ; his heart throbbed violently as he NIGHT OF THE MURDER. 209 heard Ranthorpe's knock — heard the servant let him in — heard him take his candle, and walk up stairs to bed — and heard the housemaid lock the street door, and put up the chain. He breathed freely again as the last sounds died away. Every one was by this time in bed. He would wait an hour or two longer, to allow sleep to dull their senses ; and then the fatal, perilous blow should be given ! The clock ticked audibly; and struck the hours with horrible dis- tinctness. Oliver trembled beneath each stroke. It seemed to him so loud, that every one in the house must be awakened by it. But it ceased, and a dead stillness suc- ceeded. Then twelve sounded ; then one ; and then two. But these sounds seemed so loud to him that he could not venture forth — he could not believe they were unheard up stairs. In this state of fear and suspense he remained till three o'clock. He was right in believing that the sounds were heard. One at least heard them ; and that was Percy Ranthorpe. On entering his room he had thrown himself upon his sofa instead of undressing ; and there had yielded up his imagination to the delights of dramatic composition. He had come from seeing Macready in a new tragedy ; and his own dramatic ambition had received a powerful stimu- lus. Walking home he had sketched the large outlines of a tragedy, and he was now thinking over some of the scenes. Wtiile thus scheming, he sank asleep upon the sofa ; or rather let me say he dozed and dreamed. At length he heard the clock strike three, and became aware of his position. He determined to undress and go to bed. But whoever has fallen asleep in a chair, or on a sofa, knows how reluctantly one moves from it — how the exertion of rising and undressing is shirked as long as P 210 RANTHORPE. practicable. This reluctance — this stupor of sleep was felt by Ranthorpe. He lay there making up his mind to arise, and making up his body to continue where he was. From this half- waking state he was startled by a low, creaking sound, as of a step. In such moments the sense of hearing is very acute. The sound was repeated, and repeated. Some one was slowly stealing up stairs. He sat up, and listened. His heart beat so loud, that he could hear it. He was a brave man ; but he was nervous and imaginative. His imagination always converted nightly sounds into some exaggerated horrors. Aware of this — aware of how often he had alarmed himself with puerile terrors, aroused by trifling sounds at night — he refused to credit the suggestions which crowded upon him. Who could be up at this hour? Might it not be a sound from the next house? Another step scattered such reasonings, and redoubled the throbbings of his agitated heart. There was a robber in the house ! " And yet/' he thought, " how absurd to suppose a robbery committed in the midst of London, in a house, too, where all the servants are old and faithful !" But the beatings of his heart could not so be quieted ! All was silent again. He listened intently. He was averse to go down stairs, and see if any one really were in the house, lest he should needlessly alarm the sleepers. But the sounds he had heard were so exactly like those of some one creeping up stairs, that he could not be calmed by the present quiet, and listened therefore for some new indication. He sat motionless; holding his breath, and trying to master the nervous beating of his heart, that the noise might not interfere with his catching any other sounds. But the nervous agitation he was in, made a " ringing" in his ears, which exasperated him. At length the continuance of the silence —only a few NIGHT OF THE MURDER. 211 minutes, but to liim they seemed almost an hour — caused him to smile at his suppositions. He accused him- self of again allowing his quick imagination to play tricks with him. He was about to get up and undress, in the full assurance that he had needlessly alarmed himself, when he fancied he heard a door gently opened. His nerves again trembled; the ringing in his ears came back. Could he again be cheating himself? Was he but the victim to acute senses, and over-active imagination? Un- able to bear the suspense, he arose, determined to go down stairs, and satisfy himself. He was scarcely on his feet, when a muffled sound underneath made his heart leap against his breast — a low groan pierced his ear, and filled his mind with images of horror. He dashed down stairs — burst into Mr. Thornton's room — where he had only time to see his venerable friend half-lying out of bed, — a fearful gash across his throat, — and to see the assassin leap out of the window. A wild cry burst from him, as he sprang to the window, and overturned a table, which fell with a crash. Without thinking of what he was doing, he darted after the assassin. He leapt down upon the leads, and from thence into the garden. He was in time to run along the party wall, and meet the ruffian on the roof of the stables, which were at the back of the garden. Oliver seeing himself so closely pursued, turned and grappled with Ranthorpe. It was a terrible struggle. Both were young and powerful; both were animated hj fierce passions. The slated roof upon which they stood, was but a precarious footing, and one slip would be fatal. But they closed ! Ranthorpe was too fiercely bent upon capturing the assassin, and bringing him to justice, to think of the most obvious means of doing so ; that is, of p2 212 EANTHOHPE. calling out lustily. In terrible silence lie grasped his an- tagonist. His heart bounded as he heard the sounds of alarm proceeding from the house. Mr. Thornton would be attended to ! The struggle, though long to recount, was brief to act. Oliver was the more powerful of the two ; and he had to struggle for life. With one gigantic effort he disengaged himself from Ranthorpe's grasp, and with a sudden blow on the chest, sent him reeling over the roof. Ranthorpe fell into the garden, and was stunned by the fall. On returning to his senses he found himself in the parlour surrounded by policemen, servants, and strangers. Conceive his horror and indignation at rinding that he was supposed to be the murderer ! He tried to spring up, but his bruised frame refused. He sank back upon the sofa and sobbed like a child. Well as he was assured that his innocence must be proved in a little while, he gave himself up solely to his grief at the thought of Mr. Thornton's dreadful end. All that the un- fortunate old man had been able to articulate when the alarmed servants found him, was " Ranthorpe;" and with that he feebly pointed to the window and expired. This last act, and this last word of one who loved him, were interpreted into an accusation! "Mrs. Griffith," shrieked Ranthorpe, " where is Mrs. Griffith?" " Here," sobbed that lady. " You, Mrs. Griffith, cannot you free me from this loath- some, this insulting suspicion ? Cannot you testify how I loved that dear old man — how he loved me ? Cannot you tell the world how impossible it is that I could have thought of such a crime ? What ! silent ? weeping, yet silent? O God! O God! even she believes me guilty!" " No, no, no, Mr. Percy," sobbed Mrs. Griffith— hex NIGHT OF THE MURDER. 213 suspicions banished in an instant by the pained innocence of his voice: "No, I do not believe you guilty; never will I believe it ; but appearances are so against you, my testimony cannot shake them." " And they are?" he asked haughtily. "They are," interposed one of the by-standers, " toler- ably strong. There was no one in the house but yourself and the servants. Mrs. Griffith had searched every hole and corner in company with Mr. Thornton's nephew. No one, therefore, was concealed. Yet the house was locked up — no entrance had been forced ; consequently, the mur- derer must have been one of the inmates. The circum- stances which point to you are these: The razor with which the murder was committed was yours." " Mine — how can you say that?" " Because your razor-case was found open and empty !" Ranthorpe stared bewildered. The man continued : " Your bed was found untouched; you had not slept in it." " True. I had fallen asleep on the sofa." " You never did so before?" "No." " Exactly. It looks very suspicious that you should have done so then. You were found lying in the garden, having, it is presumed, fallen in an attempt to escape. The last words of Mr. Thornton are enough to convict you." Ranthorpe sank back again. He saw what a fatal chain of circumstances encircled him ; but he felt that whoever had done the deed, had marvellously planned it ; and that at present, at least, he must endure the suspicions of the world. Led before the magistrate, he underwent the exami- 214 KANTHOKPE. nation with great calmness and haughtiness, which were mistaken for hardened guilt. There again he heard the damning evidence detailed. The servants all swore that Oliver had left the house. The housemaid swore she put up the door-chain, which was found untouched when the alarm was given. The evidence to the murderer being one of the inmates was conclusive ; the evidence against Ran- thorpe was scarcely less so. It was contradicted indeed by the testimonies of the affection which existed between Mr. Thornton and Ranthorpe; and by the proofs that no ill-will had been apparent on either side, nor had there been any symptoms of a quarrel. These were strong pre- sumptions against the evidence. There seemed no possi- ble motive why Ranthorpe should have committed the act, and every motive why he should not. Nevertheless, the facts were so damning, that the magistrate was forced to commit him for trial. The papers were full of it. London was divided into two parties, one for and one against Ranthorpe. All the literary men were indignant at any one's believing him guilty. Was there ever known, they triumphantly asked, a single instance of murder committed by a literary man? Not one. And was it probable that a sane man, a man like Ranthorpe, should do that to a benefactor, which no literary man had ever been known to do to his bitterest enemy, his worst wronger? THE PURSUIT. 215 CHAPTER VI. THE PURSUIT. Not a word! It is beyond debate ; we must act here As men who clamber up a precipice. Guidone : a dramatic Poem. It was a fortunate illness that kept Isola to her bed at this time ; she thus heard nothing of the murder, or of Ranthorpe's perilous situation. His other friends suf- fered greatly on his account. They all believed him inno- cent, but no one kaw any means of proving it. Harry, Wynton, and Joyce discussed the whole ques- tion. " A thought occurs to me," said Harry, " one of the worst appearances against Ranthorpe is the razor. Now if we assume that he is innocent, it follows that the razor must have been abstracted from his room on the very day, since he himself must have used it in the morning." "Certainly, certainly. A clue!" exclaimed Wynton. " We have then to ascertain who were the people known to have been in the house on that day." "Exactly," said Joyce, "I happen to be one; but I hope I'm not implicated." 216 RANTHORPE. Wynton then said : " I was also there. But Mrs. Griffith told nie that the old gentleman's nephew spent the evening there." " He's our man !" exclaimed Harry, striking his hand upon the table. " But he was on the best possible terms with his uncle," said Wynton. "But he is an arrant scamp," retorted Harry, " and I feel a perfect conviction he is the murderer." " Yet the servants heard him go out." " I don't care. I don't know how he did it, but I am sure he's the man." The three then went to the house; and while Joyce and Wynton talked to Mrs. Griffith, Harry examined the house, with a view of ascertaining how an entrance could have been made. He then went to the stables; but they betrayed nothing. As he was looking about, him, however, he discovered behind a dung-heap a man's hat. He picked it up; it was not Ranthorpe's. He looked at the maker's name; and telling Joyce that he believed he was on the scent, jumped into a cab, and drove to Oxford Street. He entered the hatter's shop, and having ascertained that Oliver dealt there, which confirmed all his doubts, he ordered the cabman to drive to Mornington Place, Hampstead Road, where Oliver lodged. He asked to see the landlady. " I must request profound secrecy of you, madam, as the life of a fellow-creature depends on it," he said to her. She was considerably alarmed at this opening. " But will you do me the favour of telling me if Mr. Thornton stayed at home on Monday evening last ?" THE PURSUIT. 217 "No, sir, tie never stops at home." "Humph! Do you happen to know what time he came home?" " I do not, but I can ask the servant; she let him in. It certainly was not before one, because I had some friends, who did not leave me till then." " Not before one," said Harry to himself, " and they said he left the house about eleven; good." Then ad- dressing himself again to her, " Do not, I beg, speak to the servant about it — she may blab." " I suppose I dare not venture to ask the reason of this inquiry?" she said, with some curiosity. "My dear madam, you shall very quickly know all; but at present I must not only be secret myself, but most earnestly request you not to mention a syllable to any one respecting this visit. And I need only tell you that by so doing you will prevent the officers of justice coming here and bringing scandal upon your house." This threat was well devised, and had full effect. The old lady exclaimed : " Officers of Justice !" " HushP' replied Harry, " not a word. My visit will render theirs unnecessary; that is, if you second me." " Oh ! by all means, and with thanks — with thanks I" " Good; then will you let your servant have a holiday to-morrow evening? She will ask you to go to the theatre, and say she has got orders. You will not refuse?" " Certainly not; but what can she be wanted for?" Harry laid his finger on his lips with grave significance, and then said : " Enough, she is wanted. Do not appear to know any thing, and you will save yourself a good deal of trouble. And I forgot to add, that should you notice any men hanging about the neighbourhood, and watching the 218 RANTHORPE. house, do not be alarmed, they will be police in plain clothes. Make no observation." He left the house well satisfied. The art of courting maid-servants and milliners is an art much cultivated by medical students. It is an art by itself. The man who understands all the labyrinths of a lady's heart, who is irresistible in the drawing-room, would miserably fail in the kitchen. Filer le parfait amour is not the art of love known by the Ovids and Gentil Bernards of the lower regions. Fun there takes precedence of sentiment ; a knowledge of the life of the lower classes is more necessary than a knowledge of books, which is useless. Deeply skilled in this art was Harry Cavendish; he was, in fact, a distinguished victimiser. His plan was to get the servant of all work at the house where Oliver lodged, to accompany him to the theatre, confident that if he once got her out, he should be able to learn all she knew. I cannot detail the progress of the siege. Suffice it that Mary was easily captivated by Harry, and was de- lighted at the idea of going to see a play, " a thing of which she was pertiklar fond." The reader is requested, therefore, to accompany them to the pit of the Adelphi Theatre, where John Reeve and Buckstone are making them shout with laughter. " Oh! he's a funny feller, that he is," said Mary, as the act-drop fell. " That's just it," replied Harry, "Lord, you should see him do the ' Medical Student;' to the life, and no mistake.' , "Lor!" THE PURSUIT. 219 " You know what a queer chap you've got among your lodgers, don't you?" "What, Mr. Thornton?" " Yes — you'll have some oranges, Mary? Pooh ! don't be modest. Here, you princess ! — he ! oranges !" This was addressed to a stout old woman who was crushing the knees of the audience as she wedged herself between the seats with the melodious cry of " Oranges, ginger-beer, bill of the play !" "Now, my fat friend" said Harry, as she came up, " let's see what you've got in the way of oranges." This playful address made the old woman grin, and Mary stuff her handkerchief into her mouth to hide her laughter. Some oranges were bought, and while Harry was peeling one, he continued, " Well, this Thornton was a fellow lodger of mine once. Oh, wasn't he a queer chap I" "Oh! ain't he still! Oh, no! Lord, I could tell you such larks of his I" " Do, there's a dear. Here's a delicious orange; you have it, Mary; yes, do. Well, I was going to say that one night when I sat up for him because the servant refused, how d'ye think he came home?" "How?— Do tell us." "Why, with his coat slit up the back, and without his hat. He lost his hat in a scuffle, and scampered home without it." " Lor, how odd ! I've a good mind I say, you won't tell, if I tell you something?" " Oh! here's a juicy one : do taste this, Mary, dear. Isn't it famous? — Well, you were going to tell me some- thing." 220 RANTHOKPE. " But you promise not to tell? 'cos he'll give me half- a-sovereign not to. But then, to be sure, lie only meant that I wasn't to tell missus, or the lodgers, 'cos he would look ridiklous. But don't you say a word ; — he came home t'other night in a cab, without his hat, and in such a flurry !" " Ha! ha! ha!" laughed Harry, trying to conceal his triumph in boisterous mirth. " Well, that is a good one. Didn't you laugh, Mary?" " That I did! ' Lawk! Mr. Thornton,' says I, 'why where in 'evin's name is your hat?' says I; so says he, ' Mary,' says he, ' I've been in such a spree, but I've had the worst of it,' says he ; ' two chaps pitched into me,' says he, ' and I was 'bliged to cut and run for it. Couldn't stop for my hat,' says he, ' 'cos it was a old 'un,' says he. ' Quite right, too, Mr. Thornton,' says I. f But I say, Mary/ says he, ' don't you say any thing to your missus about this, nor to the lodgers. Be sure you don't say any thing about my coming home without my hat,' says he, ' *cos it would make me look so precious ridiklous.' So, says I, ' That I won't, 5 says I. ' Well then,' says he, ' if you don't, Mary, I'll give you half-a-sovereign at the end of the month, — if you do, I shall certainly not' ' No fears,' says I, and gave him his candle." "Devilish good!" said Harry, laughing. "I wonder whether it was on Monday night, after he left me?" " Tuesday morning, if you please — and precious early, too ! It was nearly four o'clock, I'll swear." " Ha ! ha ! ha ! and was he much pummelled about?" " No ; he was in a pickle, but not bruised ; 'cos he says he's a first-rate boxer, and had tapped one man's claret, — some of the blood was on the front of his shirt." THE PUKSUIT. 221 (i Well, lie is a rum one ! But the second act is going to begin." Harry had accomplished his object : he had obtained conclusive evidence, so allowed Mary to enjoy the play as she best could, and left the conversation almost entirely in her hands. She noticed this ; but he pleaded headach. He was too occupied with his own thoughts, to support any longer the character he had assumed. He was con- sidering whether the evidence he had collected would be considered as only presumptive ; and fearful lest it might not be sufficient, he resolved on an attempt to make Oliver confess. The next day he went to Mornington Place. Oliver was at home ; indeed, he kept himself shut up, pleading the great shock which his uncle's death had given to his nerves. He remained in his room, a victim to the aveng- ing Eumenides. His conscience would not be stifled. His fears were terrible. Every knock at the door went to his heart, as if it announced his arrest. Every noise in the street sounded like the mob coming to seize him. He read the morning and evening paper with horrible eager- ness. Every line respecting the murder made him thrill. Every surmise seemed to him growing into a certitude that he was the guilty wretch. Every word in Ran- thorpe's defence seemed to him as if it must point him out to justice. If his landlady came to speak to him, to ask him how he felt, or if she could get any thing for him, he thought her motive was to spy upon him. If Mary spoke to him, or looked at him, when she came into the room, he thought she was watching the expression of his countenance, with a view to read if he were guilty. When he was facing others, and had to assume a 222 EANTHOEPE. character, the energy and attention necessary for him to perform the part, made him forget his horror and his fears. But left alone to himself, in company with his fears, existence was torture to him. He had thought of Hying to America, but was afraid, lest it should look suspicious. He had tried to forget his thoughts in one of his favourite night houses, but before he had been there three minutes, the subject of the recent murder was spoken of, and he was forced to hurry away. He scarcely slept; and when he did sink into an uneasy doze, horrible dreams tortured him. Thus night and day, and day and night, he was racked by the most wear- ing of agonies — suspense and fear ! Such was his suffering, that he was often on the point of blowing his brains out, and so ending his misery. He had, in fact, made up his mind to do so, and would pro- bably have done so, on the very morning when Harry, without undergoing the formality of announcing himself, walked into his room. He started, as usual, when any one put a hand on the lock of his door. "Oh! it's you, is it, Cavendish?" he said. "Well, any news about your friend?" " Yes/' replied Harry, carelessly seating himself, " very good news for us; the murderer is discovered." As he said this, he raised his eyes full upon Oliver, who vainly endeavoured to withdraw all expression from his face. He cowered beneath Harry's gaze, and faltered out: " How — discovered?" " By very simple means — from the description of his person given by Ranthorpe, which was not very accu- rate, and from some other suspicious circumstances, I thought I could name the man. His hat was found in the stables, which had been dropped in the struggle," THE PURSUIT. 223 — (Here Oliver glared upon him like a wild beast) — " and I found the maker's name. You will naturally suppose I lost no time in asking that maker if he made hats for the person I'm speaking of, and his reply was satisfactory." " Go on !" hoarsely whispered Oliver. " The rest of my story is too long to relate in detail. Enough, that I ascertained from the servant who let him in, that the individual I speak of came home on Tuesday morn- ing ivithout his hat." Oliver's breath was suspended ; his eyes were bloodshot with suppressed rage. " Not only without his hat, but with blood upon his shirt; and, to crown all, he promised the servant half a sovereign. — You need not fix your eyes upon that knife ! Take it, if you please ; you dare not use it against me. And if you dare — if your murderous heart has sufficient courage, your murderous hand has only strength enough to cope with sleeping old men." This was said with such crushing scorn and loathing, that Oliver bounded like a panther upon him — the knife flashed in the air — and had Harry been less active or less prepared, it would have entered his breast ; but, ac- customed as he was to single-stick, his quick eye and ready arm saved him from the danger. A sharp blow, with an oak-stick upon the ruffian's wrist, made him drop the knife. " I told you it was useless," said Harry, coolly. " You know my secret !" yelled the exasperated Oliver, snatching up the knife again — " and you shall pay for it." 6i This time I warn you," replied Harry ; " I shall not content myself with disarming you." And he placed himself in an attitude of defence. 224 RANTHORPE. " This time !" said Oliver, grinding his teeth — " I may as well swing for two as for one." A rapid blow on the elbow made his arm fall useless at his side, and at the same instant the door was flung open, and two policemen rushed in. At this sight Oliver made an attempt to escape out of the window, but the attempt was fruitless. He was soon handcuffed, and borne off to prison. " Mary," said Harry, u I've deprived you of half-a- sovereign — but there are two halves as compensation; besides the satisfaction you must feel in having been the instrument of this ruffian's conviction." "Lawk! well, who would have thought it!" was the reflection of the consoled Mary. THE TURNING POINT. 225 CHAPTER VII. THE TURNING POINT. To-morrow to fresh woods and pastures new. SlIAKSPEAEE. Ranthorpe was released, and in due time Oliver was executed. But although our hero had escaped the peril, he had not escaped the curse of notoriety. The tragical events in which he had been implicated were of them- selves distressing enough. His friend murdered — that kind, good, strange old man, removed for ever from his love — this alone was sufficient to depress him. But to this was added the painful curiosity of strangers, which not only kept his wounds open, but made him feel himself an object of notoriety. One incident I cannot omit, it is so illustrative of the- atrical life. A fortnight after his acquittal, the manager of a minor theatre, which shall be nameless, called upon him, and with inimitable effrontery proposed that Ran- thorpe should sustain his own character in a new piece about to be produced, entitled " The Dark Deed; or, the Knightsbridge Murder." " If you will undertake this slight part," continued the manager, " I can offer you a splendid salary — fifty pounds a week, sir; fifty pounds a week !" Q 226 RANTHORPE. Ranthorpe was half irritated, half amused; but shook his head, negatively. " Don't refuse it, pray, sir; consider fifty poundsa week — come, I don't mind if I say seventy pounds — and abso- lutely nothing to do but to rush into the room — give a start — look aghast — and shriek, i Ha F and to re-appear as the accused murderer, with your dress a little dis- arranged — that's all, sir." " I fear," replied Ranthorpe, smiling, " that all would be far too much for me. I must decline being any further mixed up with this matter." " Timid, I suppose; but you'll soon shake off that." " No 5 sir, I shall never shake off my disgust at the in- famous desecration of the privacies of life, which that system of dramatising recent events fosters. It is bad enough to see the newspapers pander to the vile appetites of the blood-loving public. The stage has not the excuse of the papers." He rose as he said this, and the manager was forced to take his leave. He returned, however, speedily, and said : " Mr. Ranthorpe, I appreciate your motives, you don't like to appear before the lamps. But you can still assist me ; and I will pay for the assistance. Sell me the razor with which the murder was committed — I'll give fifty pounds for it. All London will flock to my theatre to see the real razor ! Think what posters I could give ! " Every Night — ' The Dark Deed.' In which the real razor used by the murderer will be introduced. Come early." The manager was quite exalted at the imaginary pro- spect of such an attraction ; but he quickly scampered down stairs, as he saw Ranthorpe approach him, breathless with indignation. Harry laughed heartily when he heard of it, and de- THE TURNING POINT. 227 clared the manager was a knowing fellow, who rightly appreciated the public. But Ranthorpe could bear this notoriety no longer. He resolved on quitting England. He was unhappy; he was purposeless. To be always regarded as the Mr. Ran- thorpe, who had figured in the papers as the murderer of his benefactor, was peculiarly galling to him. It had been his day dream to have his name in every- body's mouth ; that dream was now realized in a hateful shape. He had aspired to celebrity, and had been forced into notoriety. He thought of Germany. He could teach English there, as a means of livelihood; and while doing so, not only would the public forget him, and his history, but he would also be preparing himself more fitly for his career. Germany would afford him subsistence — study — and oblivion. A day or two before his departure, he read with strange agitation the announcement of the marriage of Florence Wilmington with Sir Frederick Hawbucke, Baronet. " So, the coquette married at last!" he said, as he laid the paper down, " and to that rich fool, Hawbucke. Well, they will both be miserable." The train of thought which this incident awakened was extremely painful to him. The past rose before him, and it was full of reproaches. He saw himself again the happy boy, elated by ambition, undaunted by poverty — he saw himself a lion, and dazzled by a small success — he reviewed the progress of corruption, as it had contaminated his mind, and deadened his feelings — he saw himself ensnared by the arts of a coquette — lived over again the humiliation of his rejected love, the failure of his tragedy, and his last misfortune. * Q2 228 EANTHORPE. "Well, I shall leave England," lie said, "and leave behind me the memory of these errors. A new epoch opens. In Germany, I shall learn not only to forget the follies and errors of my youth, but, by being removed from every thing that can recall them, be enabled to work out a path for myself undisturbed. Driven from England, in Germany I shall gain quiet contentment." Self-exiled from his native land, he has now reached the great turning point in his career. How will he prosper? THE MISEPwIES OP GENIUS. 229 CHAPTER VIII. THE MISERIES OP GENIUS. We poets in our youth begin in gladness; But thereof comes in the end despondency and madness! Wordsworth. And mighty poets in their misery dead! Ibid. D — n the Muses! I abominate them and their works; they are the nurses of poverty and insanity! Chatterton. There is not in all the martyrologies that ever were penned, so rueful a narrative as that of the lives of poets. Burns. Most wretched men Are cradled into poetry from wrong; They learn in suffering what they teach in song. Shelley. Gli scrittori grandi, incapaci, per natura o per abito, di molti piaceri umani; privi di altri molti per volunta; non di rado negletti nel consorzio degli uomini, se non forse dai pocchi che seguono i medesimi studi; hanno per destino di condurre una vita simile alia morte, e vivere, se pur 1' ottengono, dopo sepolti. Giacomo Leopardi. Thus has Percy Ranthorpe struggled and suffered. He is now sailing on the restless bosom of the sea, and filling 230 EANTHORPE. the monotonous hours with his retrospections. They are bitter. His lot has not been happy ; but with whom lies the fault? Does he, like so many of his kindred, throw the burden of his woes upon his genius? Does he attri- bute to his genius those sorrows which, properly speaking, have been caused by his want of genius? No; he does not juggle with himself; he feels that he has been weak and has been punished; he feels that the common cant of genius being a fatal gift — a Nessus-poisoned shirt, that con- sumes the wearer, is a cant, and nothing more. It is an error founded on the most superficial indications, founded too often on the complaints of genius itself. Genius miserable ! Genius a fatal gift ! O miserable philosophy that can so construe it ! Genius is the faculty of creation, of admiration, of love. It creates, from the merest dross, spirits of beauty which haunt the soul through life. It peoples the world with lovely forms, exalted hopes, sky- ward aspirings, and everlasting joy: and, because the sen- sibility, which is its condition, subjects it to petty annoy- ances, annoyances unfelt, or not so keenly felt, by others; because its enthusiasm carries it oftentimes from the path of prudence ; and because the punishment which follows all error is not for it suspended, but falls as upon an ordinary nature's ; because, with the precious faculty of giving an utterance to all its pains and pleasures, it some- times breaks forth into a low plaint, or bitter irony, or wild despair, and in those moments curses the very source of all its greatness ; because, I say, these things are found accom- panying genius, like shadows of its glories, is genius there- fore to be called a fatal gift ? Is it not genius, great ma- jestic genius, in spite of all? The sun "kisses carrion," but is not less the sun ! For shame! ye coward and blaspheming souls, who THE MISERIES OF GENIUS. 231 bowing under ^present affliction, have cursed your lives, as if they were made up of affliction ! For shame ! ye poets, who have carried within you an exhaustless mine of wealth, yet knowing one day's poverty, have lifted up your de- sperate voices to swell the universal cry of pauperism ! For shame ! ye rashly-judging critics who have seized upon this single cry, and exclaimed, Listen I such is the expression of alife! We are mortal men — erring and infirm ; there are mi- series awaiting us under every form of life; errors beset every profession, and unhappiness darkens the prospect of the most fortunate. Shall we then drag from the hospitals of theworldall the squalid sick, and holding up their miseries, exclaim — " Behold : such is life !" forgetting all the health and strength, the beauty and enjoyment which surrounds us? Because poets have been poor, and have been driven by poverty to irregularities, and sometimes to despair, thus wasting their lives in infamous debaucheries, or in squalid misery — is therefore genius a fatal gift? If so, then where are all the outcasts of society, the disap- pointed men in other ranks of life, men not endowed with genius? Whence come all the moral and social miseries endured by those who have no claim to genius ? Does the physician never starve? Is the barrister never briefless? Has the clergyman always a living? Do these men never corn-plain of their hard lot ? Yes, they complain, but their complaint is drowned amidst the mul- titude; and neither they, nor the world, attribute their misfortunes to their talents ! Observe, that all the events of an artist's life become public, and are exaggerated by publicity; whereas the events of other men's lives rarely gain attention. Suicide is daily committed, and statistical tables show a frightful 232 RANTHORPE. amount of human life thus sacrificed, which never occupies the public mind ; but when (as has happened perhaps half a dozen times) some disappointed genius madly rushes from the world to hide in eternity his sorrow and despair, then the sad news rings through every country, and is de- plored on all sides, serving for ages as an example of the "fatal gift!" So, if a genius suffers the envy, hatred, malice, and all uncharitableness which man heaps on the head of his brother, then we have a vehement protest against it in written works; he bares his bleeding wounds to public gaze, and bids the world observe the reward he has reaped — and he is pitied ! But do not others daily suffer this? Is there no lacerated self-love moaning in privacy, without the power of a pic- turesque appeal ? an appeal, recollect, that is itself an exquisite gratification ! Other men, besides Lord Byron, were deformed, ill taught, deceived, ill-used by friends and relations, and suffered from these affronts as keenly : but Byron could fuse the passion of defiance and the pathos of his sorrows into splendid verse, and so draw down the pity and the admiration of all Europe. Nor was this pity and this admiration all the consolation he received ; with it he received intense delight from the exercise of his poetic faculty : there was a rapture in thus sublimating his sorrows into monuments of beauty, to which few joys were com- parable. His sorrows, in a great part, made him what he was : without his melancholy and defiance, his scepticism and misanthropy, his wrongs and insults, what would he have been ? He differed from other men in being able to give his sufferings a picturesque expression, not in the sufferings themselves. It is because the events of an artist's life are made public, THE MISERIES OF GENIUS. 233 that his sorrows and errors are brought into undue promi- nence, casting shadows on all the sunshine of his private joys. Whatever arouses him to defiance, whatever wrings from him complaint, the world is called upon to notice. But all that stirs his soul to rapture — all the intoxicating visions of beauty and of glory which exalt his mind — all the secret reveries (coquetries of thought) which haunt him in his solitude — all the passion of aspiration, and the delight in creation — these the world can never know: these are locked in his own breast: these form the element in which, he lives, and from which he is only wrenched by those occasional misfortunes, over which he weeps so melodiously. Genius a fatal gift? Ah, no! it is the greatest and the happiest of endowments. " Oh ! who would lose Though full of pain, this intellectual being, Those thoughts that wander through eternity?" Conceive the intense delight genius must feel when creating forms of everlasting beauty? Who shall estimate the rapture which glowed in the mind of Shakspeare when he created Viola, Imogen, Perdita, or Juliet — or of Gothe when he drew Gretchen, Clarchen, Mignon, or Faust? I sometimes feel, while listening to Beethoven, a rapture so intense, absorbing, suffocating, that it verges upon pain, and is only relieved by sighs; at such times I ask myself: " What could have been passing in his soul when lie conceived such unutterable tenderness and beauty?" Only think of the visions he must have had before he could have written his Pastorale I what thoughts must have oppressed him before they found utterance in his Symphonies of C minor and B flat ! What gloom — sublime, mystical, terrible, — must have visited him before he could have written the Marcia sulla 234 BANTHORPE. morte d'un Eroe ! What witcheries of grace and beauty must have haunted him before he could have thought of his Septuor I Such raptures — if enduring only for a mo- ment — were worthy of years of suffering ! Genius is the happiest, as it is the greatest, of human faculties. It has no immunity from the common sorrows of humanity; but it has one glorious privilege, which it alone possesses ; the privilege of turning its sorrows into beauty, and brooding delighted over them ! The greatest that ever breathed has said, " Sweet are the uses of adversity; Which like the toad, ugly and venemous, "Wears yet a precious jewel in his head!" But it is only genius that can extract the jewel, and walk the path of life illumined by its light. Adversity is an outrage to the common man, an ex- perience to the thinking man, a source of pleasure to the man of genius. The one revolts against, or else sinks under it; the second grapples with it, and wrests some compensation for its pains; the third transmutes it into beauty, and places it in the storehouse of sweetly-pensive memory; and thus " Spat erklingt was friih erklang, Gliick und Ungliick wird Gesang."* Perhaps, by reason of its very unworldliness, genius is oftener labouring under the ban of poverty, and the miseries which poverty will bring, than regulated dulness or pre- sumptuous mediocrity. But can we therein forget the exquisite enjoyment — the passion and the rapture which constitute its daily food ? for genius is fed by rapture, and transmutes all its pains into pleasures. That the lives of men of genius are embittered by many * Gbthe. THE MISERIES OP GENIUS. 235 miseries, it would be folly to deny. Bad health — bad habits, and mistaken aims — as well as those more com- mon " ills the flesh is heir to" are not without their stings : but these are the accidents and not the consequences of genius. Double them, treble them, and you will still be unable to counterbalance with them all the pleasures of a life of thought ! BOOK V. ISOLA. Soothe her with sad stories, O poet, till she sleep! Dreams, come forth with all your glories! Night breathe soft and deep ! Music round her creep ! If she steal away to weep, Seek her out — and when you find her, Gentle, gentlest Music, wind her Eound and round, Round and round, With your bands of softest sound. Bare? Cornwall. THE HAWBTTCKES. 239 CHAPTER I. THE hawbuce:es. La reine en cette cour qu'anime la folie, Va, yient, chante, se tait, regarde, ecoute, oublie. Andre Chenier. The stage is clear; I may, therefore, bring forward Florence in a new character, and allow her husband to make his debut. Florence Wilmington has become Lady Hawbucke; that is to say, mistress of one of the handsomest men, and prettiest properties in England. Few brides could have been happier, more beautiful, or more buoyant. She admired her husband more th^n she had ever admired any one before ; and although she could hardly be said to love him, in any earnest sense of the word, she felt that she must be supremely happy as his wife ; and the gay volatile creature thoroughly enjoyed all the preparations for her wedding, as more amusing even than the pre- parations for her " coming out." Sir Frederick Hawbucke was a type of the English gentleman. His Herculean frame, which would have been clumsy in a clown, was carried with such ease and simplicity that his height merely added to his dignity. Supreme in 240 EANTHORPE. all corporeal exercises — a bold rider — a dead shot — there was nothing in his manner which in the slightest degree indi- cated either the roughness of the sportsman, or the pride of physical superiority. He had been the same as a boy — quiet and inoffensive in ordinary, but terrible in passion, and irresistible in a struggle. There were fearful stories told of him at Eton — of terrible reprisals taken on those who had offended him. Brave as a lion, and as fero- cious, his nature was excessively English, and might be compared to that of the bull-dog, which, as connoisseurs well know, is the dog of dogs for the strange union of inoffensiveness and implacability. To see Sir Frederick in a room, you would fancy him the quietest and dullest of human beings. In action, of any kind, he was the promptest and bravest: cool, resolute, and irresistible. He was very handsome, but not in the least conceited. Morbidly alive to the opinion of the world upon the slightest matter connected with himself, and wholly indif- ferent to every thing concerning others ; but he concealed the former under the same mask of indifference as the latter. Indeed, so extraordinary was his self-command, that people never divined when they tortured him with their remarks ; his stoicism forbade his admitting the possibility of any thing wringing a cry from him. When Ranthorpe called him te that rich fool," he judged him superficially. Sir Frederick's intelligence was some- what above the average; he had cultivated it; but that want of impulsiveness which distinguishes the Saxon — that heavy, phlegmatic organisation, which gives its pecu- liarity to the English standard of good breeding, and which regards the demonstration of any feeling whatever as bordering on vulgarity — that very English virtue, "re- serve"— made Sir Frederick always appear to his disad- THE HAWBUCKES. 241 vantage. He was voted dull by lively asses, and ignorant by ostentatious pretenders. When this large, solid, quiet creature first saw Florence, he became enamoured of her. The contradiction of her character to his own was the great source of attraction, as is usually the case. The heavy, solid giant, with a brain as solid, but as unwieldy as his arm, was ravished — if so strong an expression may be applied to so circum- spect and reserved a nature — by the gay, careless, witty, fragile, haughty, coquettish Florence. His plain common- sense had its sparkling antithesis in her playful nonsense. He could have taken her in his hand like a toy, and he crouched at her feet like the timidest of her spaniels. She seemed so light and airy a creature, that an embrace of his would have crushed her ; and yet he felt as awkward and powerless in her presence, as if his giant strength had passed to her. Bashful and silent, he followed her wherever she went. At every party she was sure to meet Sir Frederick; in every country-house where she went, he was sure to be found. But a thought of his affection never presented itself to her. He was always so placid, so dull, and so very indifferent, that his manner justified her saying, " I like to have Sir Frederick in the house. He's always about me ; I look on him as a sort of tame cat. You can't consider him a companion, but you like to hear his purr, and like to admire his beauty." This silent courtship continued for some time, and was in progress during her flirtation with Ranthorpe, which gave Sir Frederick such alarm, that he more than once thought of challenging his happy rival ; which he certainly would have done, had the flirtation not ended. Indeed, I see not how the ice could have been broken R ■■^ 242 EANTHORPE. by any effort on His part. Florence never could suspect that the quiet, gentlemanly, indifferent person, who, though always at her side, never seemed roused by her liveliness, or charmed by her beauty, had any love for her. If she occa- sionally talked more to him, or paid him more attention than usual, the only effect produced was that of increased dul- ness in Sir Frederick. For, in truth, his invincible shy- ness paralysed his tongue ; and because he wanted above all things to stand well in her opinion, he was unable to venture beyond commonplaces. Directly she approached him, he shrunk under the mask of reserve, as the tortoise shrinks under its impenetrable shell. His aunt came to his relief. She knew his character, and divined the state of his feelings; and knowing that he would never venture without great encouragement to give a hint of his affection, she one day said to Florence, as they were walking about Rushfield Park, where they were all three staying on a visit : " Well, my dear Miss "Wilmington, now do tell me how long you intend keeping Sir Frederick in his present suspense V " What do you mean ?" " When is he to be made a happy man ?" fl Sir Frederick Hawbucke ? I make ? — ah ! madame, fy vols quelque mystification." te Not in the least. I am serious, I assure you." " Allons done ! What, my tame cat!" " You may joke as you please, but you will not convince me, my dear, that you have not long been aware of his attentions." " His attentions! le mot est joli, vraiment! — atten- tions, which consist in standing by me without opening his lips, dancing with me without an extra sparkle in mmmmmmmmm THE HAWBUCKES. 243 his eye, riding with me without a single pretty terror, without one prevenance, living under the same roof with me, and never thawing into lukewarm interest." " Does he not always follow you about ? — Is he not always sitting next to you ?" " Precistment! like a tame cat; and I like him for it. But you do not mean to assert that that is his mode of paying his addresses — hein f ". I do. Allow me, who have known him from child- hood, to assure you that underneath that silent, reserved manner, there beats the most passionate heart in the world. Still streams, you know, run deepest. His nature is as deep as it is silent; so deep, indeed, that though I have watched him from childhood, I have not yet sounded the bottom. He has the most superb contempt for all the little nothings which young men in general conceive themselves bound to display for our amusement. He hates affectation ; he hates any thing like a demonstration to others of what is passing in his own heart. He is shy; and this makes him silent and embarrassed. Now when I saw him follow- ing you from place to place, sitting by your side, more silent to you than to any one else, I was convinced you had captivated his timid, passionate heart. I have since been confirmed in this." " And did he employ you to make the declaration, which he dared not make himself ?" " Not in the least. He never mentions you. He would not whisper his affection to any human being ; his pride would forbid it. But, my dear Miss Wilmington, if you doubt what I say, observe him closely — see if he is not more reserved with you than with any one — yet, he is always seeking to be near you." R2 244 EANTHOEPE. " And when I have discovered his affection, what ami to do with it ?" "Not trifle with it — why should you not return it? He is worthy of you, and he would be an excellent match." " He Men ! nous verrons. Apres tout, il rfy a pas du danger — pour moi, du moins /" And Florence watched him. The result may best be read in her own words. Florence Wilmington to Caroline Fullerton. " My dearest Carry, " I have the prettiest bit of intelligence in the world to send you. Prick up your sagacious ears to receive it ! I am engaged to be married! Actually engaged; have in- terchanged vows; and am now busy over my trousseau. " But this, as a fact, is too commonplace to deserve much attention — though common as the fact is, we women never lose our interest in it — but it receives extra eclat from this other fact, that I love my husband elect ! Yes, love him ! ' Very natural too !' will perhaps be your reply.—' Not if you knew the man/ I retort. — ' Who is he T you ask. And as he is the very last person you would ever guess, I may as well relieve your perplexities by naming him. Well then — Sir Frederick Hawbucke ! What think you of that ? I read the astonishment in your face ; but you could not be more surprised at the discovery than I was at first. " You remember when we were at school together, how we used to aspire after some grande passion. Our ambi- tion was to inspire an attachment something like that inspired by the favourite heroines of our favourite novels — a passion disinterested as it was exalted, fiery as it was ■ THE HAWBTJCKES. 245 profound. How often has that engrossing subject de- frayed our conversation ! — how often has it inflamed our innocent imaginations! — how often has it filled us with delicious dreams! And how bitter was my disappoint- ment, when I first awoke from the illusion, to find that in real life such passions were impossible; that men were insolent and selfish, brutal in their thoughts, though polished in their manners; tyrannical, suspicious, and in- constant ! The effect upon me was very decided. Vio- lent and impetuous as I am, I suddenly changed from the little tete exaltee you knew me, to the flirt you may have heard of. I treated men as they deserved. ft But in the midst of my flirtations I found at last a real heroic heart; at the height of my incredulity re- specting man's capability of a great passion, I was amazed to find that I had inspired one of those deep, silent, tena- cious, all-absorbing passions which makes man a timid devotee, rather than a coxcomb regarding victory as cer- tain. You may conceive how the tete exaltee was intoxi- cated with vanity at the discovery ! I do believe I fell in love out of pure gratitude and enthusiasm! Though as you know my Frederick, I need not tell you that he is worth loving for himself, however surprised you may be at my beinsj captivated with one so opposite. But love delights in antitheses. I should hate a man as lively as myself. * " When I think of the lovers I have had swearing they adored me, — or looking it, it's all the same — and compare them with Frederick, I feel that it was my instinct made me oialyJZirt with them, because nature had made me for him. In none of our novels, I verily believe, did we ever meet with such a profoundly passionate nature, subdued as it is with such magnificent self-control; and I quite tremble 246 EANTHOEPE. sometimes when I think of the force of his passion, and think how he hid it from the eyes of every one, except his aunt ! He is the least demonstrative creature I ever met; and I am the most demonstrative creature perhaps ever born; so that the antithesis is perfect. But cold as he seems to others, I know that all the warmth which others expend in enthusiasm, in talk, and demonstration, he cherishes in his heart. Conceive how proud I am of him, and how happy I am and shall ever be ! "Florence Wilmington." In due time the marriage of Sir Frederick Hawbucke and Florence Wilmington was solemnised, and the "happy pair" set out for the wedding tour through Switzer- land. Their honeymoon was a honeymoon; that is descrip- tion enough. They were supremely happy. They were proud of each other — loved each other. Nothing like a disagreement occurred. Florence, indeed, was occasion- ally made very impatient at the imperturbable phlegm with which her husband visited all the ravishing scenes which lay in their route. Neither mountain nor valley, neither glacier nor lake, could wring from him a cry of admi- ration. He contented himself with pronouncing the Alps " imposing," and Lake Leman " pretty." He was always willing to make a fresh excursion ; but was as willing* to quit each lovely spot, as he had been to go to it. He was never seduced into a touch of ro- mance ; never came home fatigued with the emotions excited by the scenery. Nothing wearied him, nothing bored him, nothing enchanted him. For a lively, impressionable girl like Florence, this was, it must be confessed, sufficiently provoking. At first she attributed it to his undemonstrative depth of feeling; she THE HAWBUCKES. 247 thought he was too much affected to express his emotions. But so flattering an interpretation could not resist the daily contradiction of his insensibility. He was too mea- sured in his language and in his manner, for her to sup- pose him struggling with unspeakable emotions. He criticised too coldly, to be admiring heartily. She was impatient at his insensibility, and showed her impatience ; but finally making up her mind that he was destitute of all poetry, she ceased to torment him and her- self about it. If he could not admire passionately, he could love ! That was Florence's consolation. And when she compared him with the French and Germans — nay, even with the English they met on their journey — when she contemplated his manly beauty, and thought how he worshipped her, like Hercules spinning with Omphale, having laid his strength at her feet, she could not but feel a mingled pride and gratitude, which amply com- pensated for any reflections on his want of poetry. As for Sir Frederick, he looked upon her enthusiasm as fresh proof of her superiority over him. He knew that he could not understand her; he felt she was a creature of another order — that she did not belong to the same race as himself; and in his affection believed that she belonged to a much more elevated order. This continued till they entered Italy. There a change took place. There she was as cold, or colder, than he had been in Switzerland. She knew nothing of art, though fond of poetry. Painting and sculpture she thought all very well in the Exhibition. There she saw portraits of her friends, there she met a crowd of well-dressed people, who went there, not for the pictures, but for the Exhibition. Sir Frederick had some taste, and more knowledge ; was fond of old paintings and statues ; 248 EANTHORPE. ■was not without a smattering of archaeology ; and knew the history of the Italian Republics with tolerable accuracy. His astonishment may be imagined when Florence assured him, that she took no pleasure whatever in the " dirty brown things" he called old masters; and that she thought Chalon infinitely more agreeable as a painter of women portraits than Titian ! In Rome it was still worse. While he was either placidly examining the wonders of the Vatican, and feeling as much enthusiasm as his nature was capable of, or enjoying the classical associations awakened by the relics of ancient Rome, she was lying on the sofa reading French novels, or paying a round of morning visits, just as if she were in London. He began to suspect that his wife was not the " superior " creature he had believed her. This suspicion was slow in growing, and was often banished from his mind, but it would force itself upon him. He consoled himself, how- ever, with the reflection, that her education had not fitted her to relish art or antiquities, but that her nature was brilliant and poetical. These were the only clouds in the serene heaven of their felicity ; and they returned to England as much in love with each other as when they left it. But the terrible mistake was committed of secluding themselves from the world, of shutting themselves up in the old manor-house of an estate in Wales, where they proposed to live like turtle-doves. This at such a time was fatal. For the first week every thing went on smoothly enough. Florence found plenty of amusement and occupation in visiting all the farms, going over the estate, and making excursions to the environs. But when the novelty wore off, she be- gan to get tired of the monotony, and was annoyed to see THE HAWBUCKES. 249 the placid pleasure lier husband continued to take in every detail. Their evenings were horribly dull. The day had furnished no subject of conversation, the monotony of their lives furnished no food for reflection, no points of in- terest; and between them there were too few subjects of sympathy to supply the place ; their educations and their dispositions had not fitted them for mutually enlivening the most depressing of all solitudes — that of a country house. The charm of Florence was her liveliness, but she could not be lively alone; she needed company, new scenes, or new incidents to stimulate her animal spirits. As for her husband, he was a damper rather than a stimu- lant. His phlegm, which had rendered her impatient on their wedding tour, exasperated her in a country-house. In travelling she could take refuge in her own enjoyment, or in the society of fellow-travellers ; but here she had no refuge, and the days were oppressively monotonous. Had she not been convinced of the depth of his affection, she never could have borne with her husband in such a situ- ation; but she was too grateful to murmur ; and he, finding her get more serious, mistaking her ennui for reflectiveness, actually had the naivete to compliment her on the change — to rejoice that she was becoming a serious woman ! The following letter will convey her feelings at this interpretation. Florence Hawbuche to Caroline Fullerton. " My dear Carry, " If you love me, do persuade your husband to bring you here for a fortnight or three weeks. I am dying of ennui; my heart is ossifying. I, who never was alone before in my life, feel that I cannot support this 250 EANTHORPE. solitude. It may be all very well for Frederick; he rides out, visits the farms, discusses the state of crops, considers improvements, eats, drinks, and sleeps. That suffices for his quiet nature; but I perish here. Not a soul in the neighbourhood, not a human being to laugh and talk with. You will ask me if Frederick is not enough — Alas ! the truth must be told — he is an inestimable creature, and that is why I cannot estimate him; I respect the depth of his nature, but his silence, his undemonstrative, unimagina- tive, unimpulsive soul, makes him a most uncompanion- able companion. He is clever, clear-sighted, instructed ; but his brain is unwieldy, and his pulses scarcely beat. I would not hint such a thing to any body but you; and I would not have you suspect me of a complaint; but I really feel, as I say, a great respect for him, but no sym- pathy with him. He doesn't amuse me, in short ; and I have been a spoiled child, all my life accustomed to amusement. Poor fellow! if he suspected this, it would break his heart, I know ; so you may be sure I keep it carefully concealed from him. I have often been accused of being a con- summate actress; people don't know the value of that art; I do. If I were not an actress Frederick would be miser- able ! If I could not deceive him into the idea that his society is pleasant to me — is sufficient for me — " At this moment, she was interrupted by her husband, who, opening the door, stood outside with his hand on the lock, and said — "Did you order the carriage for this afternoon?" She started; did not at once reply, but shutting up her writing-case in some agitation, turned round her head, and then said— THE HAWBUCKES. 251 * I really forget." " Shall you want it ?" asked Sir Frederick, now coming into the room, and shutting the door. " Well — I scarcely know. Yes, I may as well take a drive." * What are you doing?" " Oh ! merely writing a letter." She coloured as she spoke. "To whom?" " To Caroline Fullerton/' u Remember me to her." " Certainly." Florence breathed again. She thought her husband had now quitted the subject, which was peculiarly un- pleasant to her ; and imagined he would soon leave the room. But he remained looking out of window, to all appearance as calm as usual. He made no signs of going away; and yet there seemed no reason for his staying. He was perfectly silent, motionless. His eyes were fixed upon the undulating lawns spread out before him. He was abstracted. The truth is, that his wife's manner — her agitation about the letter — had roused painful suspicions in his breast. He was a morbidly jealous man ; and he could not resist the inspirations of the demon which now tor- mented him. As he stood there gazing out of window, he was revolving in his own mind the names of all the young men his wife had seen recently ; but he could not single out one upon whom to fasten his suspicions. And yet wherefore this agitation? Could she really be writing to Mrs. Fullerton? If so, why shut up her writing- case? — why colour ? Florence began to feel marvellously uneasy at her hus- 252 KANTHORPE. band's silent presence. She sat drawing figures on the blotting-paper, counting the minutes of his stay. She wanted to say something to him, but could think of nothing. The silence was as a spell upon her, which she could not break. Sir Frederick at length moved away from the window, and lounged to the other end of the room. He took up a volume which was lying on the table : it was the 16 Dreams of Youth," by his old rival, Percy Ranthorpe. Florence was surprised, beyond measure, to hear him humming a tune, in a low voice, occasionally interrupting it with that sharp breathing which is to whistling what humming is to singing. She had heard him do this but once before, and that was when he heard of a relation of his having been accused of cheating at cards, in one of the London clubs. What could it mean now ? He was reading and humming. " If you have finished your letter, perhaps you will stroll with me down the shrubbery ?" he said, in his usual tone. " Very well," she answered. u Have you then finished it ?" " No ; — but there is no hurry." He was silent. She rose to put on her bonnet. " By the way," said he, " give me your letter — I will finish it. I want to say a word or two to her." " Then why not write yourself ? I shan't allow you to spoil my letters. 5 ' " Let me see what you have written, at any rate," he said, advancing towards her escritoire. " Nonsense, my dear," she said, swiftly interposing, "you know we women have secrets, which you have no share in." THE HAWBUCKES. 253 " Secrets !" " Yes : all sorts of little nothings." " Now you pique my curiosity. I must see it." " No, no, no ; don't be absurd, Frederick.' 5 " To oblige me." " Nonsense." *• I am serious." " How can you ask such a thing ! Who ever heard the like!" " I have a motive." 16 A motive ! what motive can you have ?" " That is my affair ; enough that I have one." " You are not jealous, I suppose ?" she said, scornfully. " Why not?" he retorted, calmly. 44 This is too ridiculous !" She was moving from the room. " Florence, I am not so to be put off. I wish to see that letter. No matter what my motive — whether stupid curiosity, or ^stupider jealousy — enough that I wish it. Will you show it me ?'* " No, I will not," said Florence, drawing herself up to her full height, and endeavouring to crush him with the haughtiness of her indignant look. " Beware ! beware ! you are strengthening suspicions. I may be foolish to suspect ; but you are mad if you con- firm my doubts I" "Is it to me you address this insult, Sir Frederick ? Is it your wife that you presume to dishonour by sus- picion ?" " Show me that letter." " I will not !" 44 You fear to do so." 44 Put what construction you please upon my refusal. 254 EANTHOEPE. I will not stoop to excuse myself." Her face was flushed with anger, and her eyes were rilled with tears. " Do you not see that your refusal puts the very worst construction possible ?" " Let it do so. I am above suspicion." " Then you brave me?" he said, fiercely. " No — I despise you!" And with this insult she passed into her bedroom, with the most scornful look that her outraged feelings could call up. He was stung to the quick ; but remained where he stood. Some step was to be taken, but he could not decide which. His own conjugal felicity seemed staked upon the present quarrel. It was not simply a disagreement be- tween man and wife ; it was a struggle for mastery, at the very least; and it was probably the detection of some clandestine correspondence. Had he chosen, he could at once have gone to her writing-case and read the letter; but he determined she should give it to him. Florence had thrown herself upon a sofa and had given vent to a flood of tears. She was angry and wretched. To be suspected by him — and on such evidence ! So newly married, and so bitterly initiated into the petty world of bickerings and jealousy ! And where was his deep and tender love? where was his quiet idolatry? was that also a mockery? was he as cold as he seemed? She threw herself back upon the sofa in agony at the thought. Half-an-hour afterwards she rose and walked to the door of her boudoir. Looking in, she saw her husband in the same position as that in which she had left him ; his eyes were fixed on the ground, and he was whistling with a sort of ghastly resolution. She walked up to him, saying gently: THE HAWBUCKES. 255 " Frederick, we have been very childish. I am sorry for what I said, but you provoked me beyond my power of restraint." She held out her hand to him, " You for- give me, don't you." " If you show me the letter." u "What ! still at your suspicions?" " Until they are removed." She turned haughtily from him; and taking her letter from the case presented it to him, saying: " Since you persist, read. If its contents displease you, it is your own fault. But having read it, burn it; that can never go. When next I write about you, it will be in another style." And she left the room. He took the letter and read it with tolerable sangfroid. From her manner he felt convinced that it was not so im- portant as he had dreaded; and yet it contained some- thing likely to displease him, as she acknowledged. It would be difficult to render in words the state of his feelings as he laid it down. Had he really loved Florence with that passionate depth she believed him to love her with, this letter would have driven him wild. But she was hopelessly mistaken in her estimate of his character; she had exaggerated it beyond all bounds. Because, in his shyness and self-control, he had concealed his affec- tion for her from every eye, she imagined that his affection was unbounded; because she had discovered some warmth under the snow, she jumped to the conclusion that it must be a volcano. Sir Frederick certainly loved his wife; but it was a very measured, reasonable passion — it was thoroughly " respectable." He would have made her a good husband: kind, considerate, respectful. But the idea of this quiet, gentlemanly, phlegmatic Englishman 256 RANTHOKPE. feeling any of the delirium of passion, could only have entered the head of the capricious, wilful, and exaggerated Florence, who, because she knew that her own nature was demonstrative, but not deep, was led to believe that his nature was deep, but not demonstrative ! It is mostly pride that feels jealousy, seldom love. A lover may be jealous, but it is almost always his pride that suffers. When a husband ceases to love his wife, he does not cease to feel the pangs occasioned by the sus- picion of her preference for another : which is enough to prove my position. When I say, therefore, that Sir Frederick suffered the tortures of jealousy, I do not imply that his love for Florence was more vehement than before stated, but simply that his sensitive pride suffered from a prospective jealousy. It was evident that she did not love him. Her love was acting. She confessed it. He wearied her; she wanted some one to amuse her. That one would be found — that one would be preferred ! He felt that, although his rival had not yet a name — yet the place in Florence's heart was ready for him ! " So !" he muttered, "lam no longer a companion — I am a tyrant to be nattered with simulated caresses. The system of deceit has commenced. She avows it! Avows to another that she deceives her husband !" His face was deadly pale, and his lips were violently compressed, as this last reflection presented itself. Yes, there was the pang — that another should know what passed in his family — that another should know his wife loved him not ! What was to be done ? He could think of nothing. He could only await the enemy's approach, and then de- THE HAWBUCKES. 257 fend himself. His life, he foresaw, would be a combat ; but lie savagely exulted in the idea, that at any rate he should not be a cjupe. At first he thought of returning at once to town, and allowing his wife to resume her accustomed gaieties. There she would be amused; there, perhaps, the germs of evil would have no leisure to develope themselves; she would not be tired of him, and would not cease to love him. This, indeed, was the wisest course he could have pur- sued — the only course. But his pride intervened — as it always does — to inflict its own tortures, rather than allow another to ward them off. If he was to owe her affection to such means, he would rather be without it. Better at once, he thought, to know the extent of his danger, that he might prepare for it. Thus resolved, he waded deeper into the torrent, that he might know its depth, when there was no necessity for him even to wet his ancles ! Florence was a good deal puzzled at his manner, when she met him, after he had seen her letter: he merely said, in his calmest tone : " My dear, your complaints of the country are natural enough ; but would it not have been better to make them to me than to a third party?" She had expected a burst of anger; this mildness dis- armed; and throwing her arms round his neck, she weep- ingly begged to be forgiven. The wound seemed healing ; for a few days they were together as heretofore — more affectionate, perhaps, if any thing. This did not last long ; quarrels succeeded quar- rels. She was more and more ennuyee; he was silent, sulky. A letter from Florence to her mother will, however, save me a long description. 258 RANTHORPE. " My dear Mother, — We return to town on the 17th. I quite pine for that day. I am very unhappy here; never thought I could be so wretched. But my dear mother will understand what I must endure, when she learns that I have been altogether mistaken in the character of my husband. My last illusion respecting him is gone. I thought, at least, that he adored me, but find his love was as common-place and cold as his other feelings. " Now we are always quarrelling. I don't know who begins, or whose fault it is ; but we quarrel and quarrel, for all the world like man and wife. Then he is always so exasperatingly cool ! One knows not how to get the better of him. The other day I tried hysterics, and all he did was to take up the newspaper and read it till I came to ! Conceive, my dear mother, what it must be to have a husband whom hysterics cannot move ! " But I shall never finish, if I get on the chapter of his vices. They are all comprised in one phrase — he is a domestic tyrant ! " When we are in town, I sha'n't care. There one can amuse oneself; here we are thrown upon each other for society — Jest rejouissant ! He will never catch me again alone with him in a country house !" JEALOUSY. 259 CHAPTER II. JEALOUSY. En parlant ainsi, je vis son visage couvert tout-a-coup de pleurs : je m'arretai, je revins sur mes pas, je desavouai, j'expliquai. Nous nous embrassames : mais un premier coup etait porte, une premiere barriere etait franchie. Nous avions prononce tous deux des mots irre- parables; nous pouvions nous taire, mais non les oublier. II y a des choses qu'on est longtemps sans se dire, mais quand une fois elles sont dites, on ne cesse jamais de les repeter. Benj. Constant : Adolphe. Indeed such love is like a smoky fire In a cold morning ; though the fire be cheerful, Yet is the smoke so sour and cumbersome, 'Twere better lose the fire than find the smoke. Such an attendant then as smoke to fire Is jealousy to love; better want both Than have both. Chapman : All Fools. The Hawbuckes returned to town. Although Florence had completely given up her illusion respecting her hus- band's love, and with that illusion had, of course, vanished all the romance of her attachment to him, she continued to show him the proper respect, and kept up at least the appearances of affection. No one imagined but what they were the most enviable couple in England. S2 260 RANTHORPE. Lady Hawbucke's gaiety returned after a very short en- joyment of society. Her house was splendid, her enter- tainments sumptuous. She passed as thoughtless and giddy a life of it as if she had never married,, or had never been deceived. Sir Frederick saw that she was happier in the society of many men than in his; but even his jealousy could find no excuse in her conduct with respect to any one man. She was indeed the last woman in the world to be afraid of, at that period. Her belief in man's affection was destroyed. She had renounced the idea of love, and she had no inclination to bring disrespect upon herself by flirting. No one young man was, therefore, sedulous enough in his attentions to justify Sir Frederick's jealousy. But this was no alleviation of his condition. He would rather have had one rival than a host of rivals. He knew his wife was indifferent to him, that she preferred the first comer's society to his, and this to so proud a man was terribly galling. He endured it all, however, without a complaint ; without once indicating, by word or gesture, the jealousy which consumed him. Just towards the close of the season a young Frenchman, M. de la Riviere, excited Sir Frederick's suspicions by the assiduity of his visits. In him he anticipated a successful rival. M. de la Riviere, though not handsome, was an accomplished dandy, and possessed that liveliness of animal spirits which so often passes for wit, and is, indeed, superior to it in attraction. He was just the man to captivate Florence's attention ; the last man upon earth to captivate her affections, for he resembled her too much. Sir Fre- derick never suspected this distinction ; he saw that his own sober nature was not fitted to charm Florence, and very easily persuaded himself that M. de la Riviere, from his JEALOUSY. 261 liveliness and frivolity, must have every advantage over him He endeavoured, by various pretexts, to warn Florence; but as he dreaded her suspecting his real motive, he was obliged to submit to a defeat in all their conversations on the subject; he could bring forward no good, ostensible reason. "In a word, I do not like him!" he impatiently ex- claimed one day at the close of a discussion. " Tantpis! I do ; and as he never favours you with his company your good opinion is superfluous. Est ce logique f f He was forced to hold his tongue. Her last speech seemed to him like an open avowal of her encouragement of De la Riviere's attentions. They went to Baden-Baden — M. de la Riviere was only a day or two behind them. He became more and more attentive ; but Sir Frederick's utmost vigilance could not detect the slightest appearance of any understanding be- tween him and Florence. He lived in a perpetual fever of expectation. It was the occupation of his life to guard his honour from the stain he deemed would inevitably be cast upon it, were he not vigilant. Her love was gone, he knew ; his own had given place to contempt. But in the silent defence of his honour — in the gradual development of this internal drama, he felt all the keen delight which ever accompanies strong passions. In this state of mind every trifle had terrible significance ; every word was com- mented on in a hundred different ways; every look was interpreted. He stood in presence of a deadly enemy, waiting till he should safely strike the first blow, before one could be aimed at him. They went to Paris — M. de la Riviere followed. One evening, at a ball, Florence was dancing with him, quite 262 EANTHOEPE. •unsuspicious of the watchful gaze of her husband, who wa3 leaning against the door of one of the inner salons. She was in high spirits. As the dance concluded, Sir Fre- derick, who was watching her narrowly, saw her give a slight start, imperceptible to any but a jealous eye, and saw the colour mount to her cheek. His heart beat wildly, but he preserved the calm nonchalance of his position, rivetting his eyes on his wife. De la Riviere bowed and withdrew. Sir Frederick saw him glide from the room, to which he did not return. Meanwhile, Florence was playing with her bouquet, and dexterously contrived to slip into her bosom the tiniest note conceivable : a manoeuvre that did not escape the vigilant scrutiny of her husband. It was observable that Florence lost her gaiety for the rest of the evening. During their ride home, she never opened her lips, though in general she was voluble enough in her quizzing of the company. Thrown back into a corner of the carriage, she seemed absorbed in her thoughts. The heart of Sir Frederick throbbed fiercely; and a grim smile played on his lips ; but he also was silent. The time for action was come ! He only waited to see if Florence would mention any thing about the letter, which he thought, if she were innocent, she assuredly would. Her silence was to him convincing proof. Was then Florence really in love? No. Yet she re- ceived a billet from a young man, which she knew must be a declaration, and she had neither virtuously rejected it, nor communicated its contents to her husband. The reasons are simple. Her morality was somewhat lax — her love of any thing romantic very great — her abhorrence of " scenes" was profound — and she dreaded her husband. Without feeling the least affection for De la Riviere, she was nattered at the little bit of romance — she was pleased JEALOUSY. 263 with his audacity — and had she been offended at it, she was too well bred to have made a " scene." Her intention was to answer the letter by polished coldness in her man- ner, which should sufficiently express her sense of his forgetfulness of the respect due to her. The next afternoon, Sir Frederick astonished De la Riviere beyond expression by asking to be allowed to join the dinner which he was to give that day at the Cafe de Paris to some actresses and their " protectors" — un diner dejeunes gens, in fact. " With the greatest pleasure, my dear fellow," replied De la Riviere, overjoyed. u I should have asked you before, but I thought that as an Englishman — un homme aprincipes! — you would scout the idea of such very decolletee society as ours." " I shall be but a poor guest," replied Sir Frederick, calmly, " but I want to see this aspect of Paris life. We have nothing in England like it. Besides, I have heard such praises of your Florine." " I feel nattered. But you must not expect great things. She is the prettiest actress in Paris — that is why she is my chere amie ; but she will not stand comparison with your charming English women." De la Riviere was highly pleased at the prospect of making Sir Frederick a roue. It would be such a weapon in his hands. What would Florence say when she heard of her husband dining with actresses ! He chuckled prodi- giously at the thought. Little did he know the fierce, implacable, irresistible antagonist he fancied he was leading by the nose ! That calm, polished Englishman, whose name he expected to dishonour, was accompanying him to a battle-field, not to an orgie. The dinner was but an excuse. Sir Frederick 264 RANTHORPE. was too self-possessed to think of quarrelling with De Riviere on his wife's account. That would have been publishing to the world the very intelligence he meant to bury in De la Riviere's death. And he was too cool to make such a mistake. Thus, while the lively Frenchman thought Sir Frederick was walking blindfold to his ruin, he himself thoughtlessly walked into the trap laid for him by his supposed dupe. The dinner was sumptuous, and boisterous. Four of the most piquant actresses of Paris, four of the charming young men, whose ambition is to revive the dissolute orgies of la Regence, were the guests. Sir Frederick sat next to Florine, to whom he paid marked attention. He — the shyest, proudest man in London, paid chivalrous attention to an actress at the Varittis ! Such is the force of passion. Florine was prodigiously flattered. She was moreover piqued into being fascinating, by the insolent remark of De la Riviere. When first Sir Frederick entered the room, she was greatly struck with his beauty, " Sais tu, mon enfant," she whispered to De la Riviere, " que ton milord est fort bel homme." " Le fait est qu'il n'est pas mal," replied De la Riviere, carelessly. " Comme tu dis ca ! Tu n'as pas peur, toi?" "Moi? Bah!" " Mais je serais tres capable de m'amouracher de lui !" "Possible!" " Apres?" " Tu y seras pour tes frais !" " On dirait que je suis laide a faire peur." " Non; on dirait tout simplement qu'il est Anglais." The little Frenchwoman's vanity was roused. She de- JEALOUSY. 265 termined on the conquest of this supposed impregnable fortress — an Englishman's heart. She exerted all her coquetries. To the increasing surprise of De la Riviere, Sir Frederick became more and more gallant — fixed his eyes upon Florine in an ardent manner — paid her extra- vagant compliments, which, though they wanted the ^finesse of the Frenchman's, compensated for that defi- ciency by the ardour with which they were uttered. De la Riviere became jealous. The champagne flowed — the guests became excited — the fumes of the wine, and the intoxication of talk had begun to operate upon all of them, except Sir Frederick, who, though he drank bottle after bottle, seemed quite above the influence of wine. The only effect was perhaps that of a greater clearness in his ideas. He alone was un- absorbed in the merriment around him. He sat there drinking and making love, but with his ears open to every remark, his eyes catching every change of his enemy's countenance : calm amidst the unrestrained licence of this orgie, steadily pursuing one object. Florine was so excited by the wine and by her success with Sir Frederick, that she forgot the presence of De la Riviere entirely 5 and almost turning her back to him, en- tered into a long and sentimental dialogue in an under- tone with Sir Frederick. De la Riviere saw that he was placed in a ridiculous light, and catching an interchange of glances between two of his friends, which exasperated him to the utmost, he resolved to put an end to Florine's flirtation. This was not easy. He had swallowed several bumpers, which completed his intoxication, before he could hit upon a proper plan. At last, with an uneasy attempt at banter : 266 EANTHORPE. " Take care, take care, Sir Frederick. You are a novice as yet, and will lose your heart before you know it." " No great loss," replied Sir Frederick, taking Florine's hand, and pressing it tenderly, a and I should be content to lose it here." "Bravo! bravo!" retorted De la Riviere, ironically, " Lovelace himself could not have said a better thing. But you forget, — ha, ha, ha ! — that you may turn poor Florine's head. She has a passion for Englishmen." M Perhaps so," calmly answered Sir Frederick, seeing the storm louring. "You know I shall be forced to be jealous, — ha, ha, ha!" " Perhaps so. I dare say you would not enjoy losing so incomparable a chere amie." "Oh! oh! you think then that I should lose her?" retorted De la Riviere, with insolent irony, his eyes flash- ing as he spoke. The women trembled. The men held their breath. " When France presumes to cope with England," replied Sir Frederick, with unutterable scorn, " she must lose." This sarcasm was doubly insulting : as a Frenchman and a lover, it was felt by De la Riviere, who started to his feet. The guests all did the same, with the exception of Sir Frederick, who sat pouring out a glass of wine with the most insolent coolness. All eyes were fixed alter- nately upon the two antagonists, in consternation at the issue of the dispute. De la Riviere raised his wine-glass in the air, and livid with rage, said slowly : " England is a nation of shop-keepers and clowns, we all know. The mission of France is to instruct the world. Whenever she meets with a mal-appris, she gives him a JEALOUSY. 267 lesson in savoir-vivre. She does so now /" and he dashed the contents of the wine-glass in Sir Frederick's face. Sir Frederick had expected this — desired it; he made no effort, therefore, to avoid it; but quietly knocking De la Riviere down, as he would have felled an ox, he turned to the guests, asked which of them was to be De la Riviere's second, and walked calmly out of the room. At the Bois de Boulogne they met. Sir Frederick was no longer the phlegmatic being his friends had known him. A triumph sparkled in his eyes, which explained the elastic lightness of his step. He came to the rendez- vous more like a bridegroom going to the altar. He was, in truth, supremely, savagely happy; he came to kill his rival ! De la Riviere fired. Sir Frederick staggered. He was hit; but soon recovering his position, levelled his pistol, and taking deliberate aim, shot his antagonist through the head. De la Riviere fell. Sir Frederick walked calmly up to him; saw that he had only a few moments to live; and as neither the seconds nor the surgeon understood English, he addressed these words to the dying man in the politest tone imaginable : " That is the answer my wife sends to your letter." The dying man glared fiercely at him — attempted to speak — but his lips only moved feebly, and he expired. Sir Frederick's strength was now spent, and he fainted from loss of blood. He was borne home insensible. His wound was not dangerous. Florence, really afBicted, was prodigal in her attentions to her wounded husband. She believed, as every one else believed, that the cause of the quarrel had been De la Riviere's jealousy; but as she had long since ceased to think much of her husband's affection for her, and as she was not herself of a 268 RANTHORPE. jealous disposition, it affected her very little that he should have been fascinated by an actress. Her attentions to him were however horribly misinterpreted by her husband: he imagined that she had divined the real cause of the duel, and that remorse was the source of her tears — hypocrisy the source of her attentions. One day, as she sat alone with him, and he reclined upon a couch, having nearly recovered from his wound, she laid down the paper she was reading, and said, laughingly: " So your Morine is not inconsolable, I see. The Charivari informs us that she has left France for Russia, in company with Count O f." "My Florine!" he answered, scornfully. " Yes, yours. Don't be uneasy, I'm not at all jealous, and have known the story a long while." He fixed a penetrating glance upon her, and said : " Why must you be such a hypocrite, even when you must know it is useless ?" " Sir Frederick!" she exclaimed, haughtily. "Let us understand each other. You know that Florine was a mere pretext." " A pretext ! and for what, pray?" " Our duel." " Pray be explicit ; I hate innuendoes." " I will, since you force me. You kept up a corres- pondence with De la Riviere." She sprang to her feet. Then suddenly checking her- self, she said scornfully : " You are misinformed. I received, indeed, one letter from that unfortunate young man." " And I took upon myself to answer it," retorted he, grimly smiling. JEALOUSY. 269 The whole truth was revealed to her as in a flash. For some moments she stood there speechless, bewildered. He watched her in silent scorn : he believed her to be acting. With inconceivable dignity, she turned from him, and swept out of the room. From this time all disguise was impossible. They mutually read each other's hearts. They hated each other, and they knew it. Florence would have forgiven any jealousy from a lover ; but her husband she knew loved her not, and his suspicions were therefore simply debasing. Conscious not only of her own integrity, but of the care she had taken not to bring the slightest slur upon his name, even by flirtation, she was the more insulted at his groundless jealousy. On the other hand, the systematic manner in which he had avenged an imaginary wrong, seemed to her so diabolical, that his presence became odious. She proposed a separation. He refused peremptorily. " I will have no scandal," he said. "Very well, then," she replied, "if you prefer the scandal of seeing me surrounded by lovers." " That I shall not see. Every man who approaches you in that character meets the fate of De la Riviere." This was said so coolly, yet with such determination, that a shiver ran over her. " I give you due warning," he added. " If you flirt, I shoot your cavalier; if you compromise my name, I shoot you I" She bowed her head, and wept. There was something in the tone of his voice which gave terrible assurance to his threat. She felt that she was in the power of a man as cool as he was implacable. The bloom of her life was 270 RANTHORPE. gone ; she felt that a miserable fate awaited her, and in conscious impotence she wept. It was then that the pangs she had read in Ranthorpe's face — as he stood over the prostrate Isola, and passionately declared his love — arose before her in mournful reproach. She had tortured him without remorse ; she had shaken off the recollection of his agony, as an uneasy thought is shaken off; she had smiled at his presumption, and thought no more of him. But now, in the depths of her own affliction, his anguished face was before her eyes, and she thought how much happier she should have been as his wife, adventurer as he was, than as the wife of the jealous and implacable Sir Frederick. He would have loved her ! There was deep sadness in the reflection, and it seemed to her a punishment for previous recklessness. The Hawbuckes returned to London. Every one ob- served the change in Florence ; her spirits were invariably either sorely depressed or extravagantly elated. Ill health was her excuse, and she looked ill enough to make it plausible. Sir Frederick was as calm, handsome, and dull as ever. In this state we must leave the " happy pair," to occupy ourselves about the other, and more interesting persons of this history. THE SURGEON. 271 CHAPTER III. THE SURGEON. II vivait jadis a Florence un medicin Savant hableur, dit on, et celebre assassin. BOILEAU. Thou knowest that in the state of innocency, Adam fell; and what should poor Jack Falstaff do in the days of villainy? .... If to love sack and sugar be a fault, God help the wicked. Shakspeare. Harry Cavendish, having passed the College of Surgeons, had taken a house in Edwardes Square, Kens- ington, shaved off his moustaches, renounced his former pursuits, and seemed fast settling into a respectable member of society. People still thought him "too slang," but acknowledged the improvement. It was the turning point in his life. He had " sown his wild oats;" and what he might hereafter become, depended on the goodness of his disposition, and the circumstances which surrounded him. Too little heed is taken of this critical period in a young man's life. It is a common remark, that the wildest youths turn out the best men. Dissipation, though an evil, is an evil best got through in youth. If there are 272 EANTHORPE. wild oats to sow, let them be sown early; for bad habits later in life become fixed habits, and the rake at thirty is irreclaimable. Parents are needlessly alarmed at the wildness of their sons. Look at the young Cantabs and Oxonians, who, after getting deeply into debt, learning more slang than Greek, becoming first-rate " dragsmen," or incomparable scullers, instead of senior wranglers, are pronounced by parents worthless scamps, for whom no hope is pos- sible. What do these young men become? Scamps? No : good, upright, manly Englishmen ; specimens of the finest race in the world — English gentlemen. A few turn out badly, but they are the exceptions. Look at the mass of English gentlemen — interrogate their youths, and see from what youthful extravagances these men have emerged to become the first of citizens. Is this a defence of dissipation? No; it is simply say- ing, that as youth is foolish and exuberant, its acts will be folly ; but when youth passes away, it carries with it the cause of all this folly, and parents should not despair. Instead of despairing, they should observe. There is a critical period in the young man's life, when he may be turned to any thing that is good. It is then that his future profession or avocation will have power to wean him from his habits. It is then his character begins to consolidate. Of all influences capable of directing him into the right path, none is so powerful as that ex- ercised by women. If he loves, he is saved. Harry was saved by love. Isola's little Walter had fallen ill, and the servant, despatched to the nearest sur- geon, came to Edwardes Square. As Harry entered the room, Isola was suddenly struck with a reminiscence of THE SURGEON. 273 his face. She had only seen him once, and that was on the occasion recorded early in this veridical history. She had, however, forgotten the occasion, and only remembered it after he had left the house. Her repugnance at the idea of meeting him again was heightened by her diffidence in his skill; a young man who had been such a student, could not be a good practitioner, she thought. She was on the point of sending for other advice, when the servant casually let drop Harry's name. Isola started. She had often heard Percy speak of him, and speak of him in the highest terms. Could this be the same ? She trembled ; but recovering from her fears by recollecting that Percy was in Germany, she determined to let things take their course. That night Walter slept soundly, and the fever abated. Harry looked in to see how his little patient was going on, as he said; to see once more the lovely girl watching by that patient's side, he meant. He found his patient recovering, and the fair watcher grateful; she thanked him with tears in her eyes. He thought he had never seen any one so beautiful. The large lustrous eyes shining beneath that queenly brow, and the melancholy sweetness which overspread her whole countenance, strangely affected him. It was impossible to look upon her without interest. She seemed formed out of different clay from ordinary women; and there was about her an undefinable some- thing which seemed to indicate that her life had a hidden romance in it. His visit was a long one. His visits were daily longer and longer. Walter im- proved rapidly ; and the conversation, which followed the medical inquiries and prescription, was to both full of charm. To Isola, because she so rarely saw a cultivated T 274 KANTHORPE. person, that his society was a luxury. To him, because he could have gazed for ever upon that melancholy face, and listened to her musical voice. Walter at length became so strong, that even Isola's anxiety could not create a fear for him, and Harry was forced to cease his visits. HARRY IS IN LOVE. 275 CHAPTER IV. YES : HARRY IS IN LOVE. He brushes his hat o' mornings : what should that bode ? MUCH ADO ABOUT NOTHING. Ella pelea en mi, y vence en mi, y yo vivo y respire en ella, y tengo vida y ser. DON QUIJOTE. Harry began to have suspicions that he was in love; and these suspicions were not idlj grounded. He thought of nothing but Isola; dreamt of nothing but her; heard the singular intonations of her voice always in his ears, had the magic of her beauty always before his eyes. He determined to extinguish these sparks, and resolved to see her no more. But Byron says, that, " When a woman hesitates she's lost." Woman is necessary to the truth of the rhythm, but man would be equally good for the truth of the aphorism. What is hesitation? Hesitation is the dalliance with a resolution never in- tended to be enforced — a sophistical flattering of our weakness — a patronage of reason, which we know to be harmless; in a word, hesitation is the prudery of T2 276 EANTHORPE. desire — the " and whispering I will ne'er consent, consented" of human incongruity. "When a man resolves to tear himself from the fascinations of a woman, — you may be sure that he is an epicurean, re- fusing a luncheon in order not to spoil his dinner. He stays away for a day — perhaps two — perhaps a week. He returns to her feet, only the greater slave. Thus Harry, while vowing to see Isola no more, never could take any other walk but that up Nightingale Lane. The beauty of the lane was his excuse; which was the more suspicious, as he had never noticed it so curiously before. The reason also of his always keeping within sight of her house, instead of winding further up the lane, he never asked himself. For two whole weeks, his walks were ungladdened by a sight of her, and his irritation at the disappointment in- creased every day. He had no right to call, and could forge no reasonable excuse. All this while she was shut up in her room, endeavouring to make up for the time she had lost in attending on Walter; and to be able to meet Mr. Cavendish's bill, which she was in daily expec- tation of receiving, and which she feared would be large. One day, little Walter was swinging on the gate, as Harry came up the lane. Harry was delighted; Walter had a great fondness for him, and thought him such a " nice gentleman." They played and talked together; and Harry artfully elicited from him all the particulars of Isola's ways of life, and a great many interesting traits of her character. While playing, they saw her come out of the house with a parcel in her hand. Walter ran up to her, exclaim- ing, "The Doctor! — the doctor!" who followed, feeling rather nervous. She again expressed her gratitude for the HAKRY IS IN LOVE. 277 cure he had effected, and asked him if she might venture to take Walter into town with her; he replied, that he thought it would do them both good, and recollecting that he also was going into town, begged permission to accom- pany her. She smiled her acceptance, and passed her arm within his. As he felt the delicate hand of his beloved gently resting on his arm, he experienced a sensation almost equal to the first kiss; and he walked along, "as if he trod on air. " Harry walked and talked ; was fascinated and fascinating. The turn of the conversation once lead him to mention Ranthorpe. Isola trembled, and was silent for a few mi- nutes, and then said : " Did you know Mr. Ranthorpe, then ?" " Yes," replied he, intimately; "we lived in the same house together. Do you know him ?" " I — that is — yes, I knew him in his father's lifetime — and — don't you admire his poems ?" " I admire every thing about him, except — but, to be sure, he has cured himself of that error." " What— error?" " Oh, nothing — nothing — not worth mentioning. Yes 5 Ranthorpe and I have spent many happy hours together. — But here is Mr. Jones standing at his own door." They entered, and the subject of conversation was changed. When Harry returned home that evening, he confessed himself irretrievably in love ! 278 RANTHORPE. CHAPTER V. THE BETROTHMENT. And in my heart, fair angel, chaste and wise, I love you : start not, speak not, answer not. I love you : nay, let me speak the rest. Bid me to swear, and I will call to record The host of heaven. Woman killed with Kindness. A CLOSER intimacy had sprung up between Isola and Harry : their meetings were favoured by all sorts of pre- text. One was furnished by Walter's mother, who wished Isola would take Harry's portrait — that she might preserve the likeness of the saviour of her boy, she said — that she might throw the two together, she meant. The subject was broached one evening, and Harry, who saw, prospectively, a number of delicious evenings, while the portrait was in progress, awaited Isola 's reply with considerable agitation. " You know," pursued Mrs.Williams, "he saved Walter, and we owe him a debt of gratitude." " No debt can be more willingly paid than that," said Isola. " Will it !" he exclaimed, catching her hand in transport. Suddenly recollecting himself, he stammered an ex- THE BETROTHMENT. 279 cuse, and walked to the window. This action surprised her; and still greater was her embarrassment as she saw him turn round again, looking very agitated. He left the house after vainly endeavouring to keep up a con- versation on commonplaces. Isola was thoughtful. The last few minutes had opened tracks of thought before untrodden. She had known him only three months, and in that time he had completely changed from the wild, exuberant, medical student, into the gentlemanly, well-informed, enthusiastic, noble-re- solved man he was at present. He had lost all taint of the medical student. She was struck with the amount of alteration. The transitions had been so gradual as to be unobserved : the changed man alone was recognised. Whence this change? Isola was no sophist, and therefore did not " reject with modesty" the idea which forced itself upon her, that she was the cause — that love for her had brought him, from the wandering extravagances of youth, back to his natural disposition. She contemplated the probability of this, and every thing occurring to confirm it, she acknowledged it as a fact. She was not displeased at it. Did she then love him ? She knew not. Her heart had for so long been shut, even to hope, that she had ceased to think of love ; and now that she was forced to interrogate her feelings, she found them so confused, that no conclusion could be drawn from them. That she was delighted whenever he came, — that she was fascinated by his conversation, so full of enthusiasm and fine feeling, — that she was thoughtful, and often weary, when he was away ; — all this she knew, and acknowledged. But was this feeling love? At times she thought it was : at others she compared it with her 280 RANTHOEPE. love for Percy, and a curious difference was percep- tible. This perplexity increased each evening as he sat for his portrait : each night she went to bed with a surer feeling that he loved her; but whether she felt for him the affec- tion of a wife, she could not answer. One evening, as they sat talking about their early years, her voice faltered. She said that painful recollections always prevented her indulging in long retrospections. She paused — she knew not what she was about to utter, and dreading lest she should commit herself, she stopped abruptly. Harry was breathless. She walked to the window, and pulled aside the curtains. The young moon shone full upon her face; she gazed on it in silence. There she stood, trembling with vague, voluptuous, yet oppressive thoughts, which crowded on her brain. " The holy time was quiet as a nun. Breathless with adoration." She gazed upon the scene, unconscious of its beauty; but her thoughts were not uninfluenced by it. She was in a waking dream; the present and the past were dead, and she was sailing down the sunny streams that intersect the dreamland of the future. She was unconscious of Har- ry's presence. He sat gazing at her with aching eyes, rapt in adoration. Her quick thoughts gave a sudden flushing to her cheek, and a sparkle to her eye; her lips were parted, as by an eager breath, and a smile of ecstacy ran over them from time to time. Her bosom panted quickly; she was in a state of great nervous excitement, yet moved not, but stood there in the moonlight, like a statue, gazing on the THE BETROTHMENT. 281 moon, et that with so wan a face" rolled upwards through the sky. This continued only a few minutes, but those minutes were as years in thought. Her smile then died away ; her eye became meaningless ; and a long deep sigh told that her vision was at an end, and that she had fallen from the clouds to earth again. He rose and walked up to her. She turned towards him with a faint smile, and extended her hand to him. He took it in both of his, and pressed it in silence. She returned the pressure. " Miss Churchill — Isola — do you read my heart?" " I do," she answered, again pressing his hand in that simple, truthful manner which characterized her; " but I am unworthy of it — I cannot give you in return the same devout affection — mine is a widowed heart." She then related her past history. She told him of her early love, of Percy's coolness, of his ambition, and finally of his inconstancy. She told him how her heart had been sacrificed to the allurements of a coquette. "Woman- like, she laid all the blame upon herself, excusing every way her lover. Harry was speechless. He knew nothing of Percy's love for Isola. Such conduct from his best friend to one he most loved in this world, completely overcame him. He drooped his head upon his breast, and gave way to sorrow. A long silence ensued. " Isola," said he at length," youhaveindeed been wronged — but you have loved Percy — perhaps love him still." u No," she said, shaking her head sorrowfully; ei I do not love him — I have long been cured of that." " Indeed; then you — ?" u I can offer you only a widowed heart — but that is 282 RANTHOKPE. yours. I have been frank with you — I have been explicit, because on such occasions any misunderstanding is the cause of misery. I do not love you as I have loved. I . . . esteem you; you are dearer to me than any one else in the world; but — but — -" « But what?" " I have one condition to affix; that is one twelve- month's delay." " Oh ! why delay our happiness ?" " In order to secure it ; not from mere caprice, believe me. Listen. As I told you, I have great affection for you; but whether as one dear friend loves another, or whether as a wife should love her husband, I know not, I have interrogated my feelings very, very often, but cannot get a clear, decisive answer. All that I can pro- mise, therefore, is to be a faithful wife and companion. I cannot promise to return your affection. Duty is in our power; not so feeling. It is very important to our future happiness that you should be convinced that you would be contented with a widowed heart ; it is important that, all the obstacles to your love being removed, you should render it amenable to reason, and calmly judge whether our union would be productive of the happiness you seek. In less than a year you may repent — " " Impossible !" he interrupted. " I do not say you will, but you may ; it is well to guard against such things. If therefore on this day twelve- month you still desire our union, I promise to be yours ; if before that you have reflected on all circumstances, and have come to the conclusion that your happiness would be uncertain without my love, then will we be as brother and sister, and never mention the subject again." THE BETROTHMENT. 283 " But I am convinced; how could I cease to love you?" "No; I am inflexible. A year's delay to procure a life's happiness, is surely a small sacrifice." " I will not oppose your wishes, dearest love; but be assured that then, as now, as ever, it will be my pride, my rapture only to call you mine." And thus they were affianced. 284 RANTHORPE. CHAPTER VI. THE BIRTHDAY. Lass diesen Blick Lass diesen Handedruck dir sagen Was unaussprechlich ist. Faust. Ranthorpe remained two years in Berlin, supporting himself by giving English lessons to the young ladies of the upper classes, and devoting all his leisure to hard study. He lived a solitary life, but on the whole, a happy one. He knew that he was preparing himself for the great combat with the world, and determined this time not to fail from inconsiderate haste. Many were his delicious reveries when rambling through the wild Thiergarten, which in winter, when covered with snow, looks so po- etically desolate, and which in summer, forms a shady retreat. There, amidst its " leafy solitudes," he meditated on the vexed problems of philosophy, or scrutinized the mysteries of art. There he was supremely happy. He then went to Dresden, where he stayed some months in almost daily communion with the master-spirits whose immortal pictures grace the museum, and when he knew by heart every tint of the Sistine Madonna and the Seggiola THE BIRTHDAY. 285 of Raphael — the Maddalena, Notte, and St. Sebastian of Correggio — the Venus, and the Christo del Moneta of Titian — the pomp and magnificence of Paul Veronese, and the varied power of Rubens, Ranthorpe thought of returning to London. He had a tragedy in his portfolio, such as his most rigorous criticism could not throw any doubts on, and with that he hoped to achieve a name in literature. He returned; went through the usual harassing preli- minaries, which need not again be described, and at length had the satisfaction of seeing his labours crowned with success. His tragedy was an extraordinary work, and startled the public into enthusiasm. A great tragedy it was not; if we understand by the term, such a work as our magnificent dramatic literature has entitled us to ex- pect from every ambitious aspirant. But though not proof against severe scrutiny, it had incontestible merits : power, passion, rapidity, and beautiful poetry. It drew crowds to the theatre nightly; it was read by every one; reviewed everywhere ; was played in the provinces ; and, in short, was a triumph. Ranthorpe from that day took his place amongst the literary men of England. He had, in part, at least, realised the dreams of his boyhood. But although a proud consciousness of owing his success solely to his own energy and genius, from time to time made his heart beat with satisfaction, yet, on the whole, he felt no such delight as his boyish expectations had pictured. Success, after all, is not so gratifying as people imagine ; while failure is horribly depressing. Where then is the poet's reward? In activity — in crea- tion — in the healthy employment of his faculties. There, and nowhere else, is his reward ! Ranthorpe might of course easily have been made a 286 RANTHORPE. " Lion" again — a " Lion," too, roaring in a far wider den than before. But lie had seen through that folly. He was not a second time to be seduced. All invitations whatever were steadily refused. He was to be seen at the houses of a few friends — people whom he esteemed and admired in spite of their position, were it high or low — but he was " to be had," as the phrase goes, nowhere. He offended a number of people, who accused him of affecta- tion — of wishing to making himself of consequence — but he never moved from the path he had chalked out for himself. He led a quiet, studious, meditative, melancholy life. Yes, melancholy, for he had not forgotten Isola. His success seemed robbed of its charms, because she was not near him to share it. In his quiet, studious life he pined for the sunshine of her presence. And Isola also thought constantly of him. She and Harry had been twice to see his play — had read it aloud to each other — and he often found her weeping over it. She knew it by heart; and yet there seemed a fascination in the page, which nothing could wear off. The heroine pretty much resembled her in character; so that when she read the impassioned love passages, she seemed to hear Percy uttering them to her : and her eyes would fill with tears of exquisite pain. Harry grew fretful and uneasy. The calm delicious hours he had been accustomed to spend with Isola were now converted into jealous watchings of her counte- nance. She often spoke of Ranthorpe; and, although nothing betrayed to him a renewal of her former love, nor even a wish to meet Percy again, yet there was no con- cealing the very great interest she continued to take in his welfare. Every mention of his name jarred upon THE BIRTHDAY. 287 Harry's feelings ; every inquiry seemed to him tantamount to a wish for his presence. He asked her one day to con- sent to see him, in order that this suspense might cease. " No," she replied. " It is better as it is : it is better for all sakes that I should not see him ; at all events till I am married. I could not see him : it would open wounds now healed ; it would lead to explanations as painful as they must be useless." It was in vain that she declined seeing him. Harry saw too plainly that her thoughts were constantly in that direction. A painful sense of dread oppressed him : dread of losing her he best loved upon earth. He was willing to accept of her widowed heart : it would have made him the happiest of men; but her estranged heart he could not accept. After many struggles with himself — after many plans laid down and broken as soon as made, he determined that his fate should be decided : he determined that Isola and her lover should meet again, and that if they loved each other still, he would relinquish his claim. If they no longer loved, all jealousy would be at an end. " I forgive your jealousy," she replied, "it is most natural ; but believe me it is groundless. Percy no longer loves me, It is impossible for me not to feel intensely interested in him. I cannot forget that my existence was once bound up in his. I cannot forget all the delicious associations of the past; — nor all the pangs which grew out of them. But do not let me see him. I have pleasant thoughts of him, for I think of him as he was. I have not seen him since that fatal day — the sight would awaken feelings — painful feelings, which you, dearest," she added placing her hand affectionately on his, " have caused me to forget.' ' 288 KANTHOKPE. " Bless you for those words !" he cried, in transport. " Look at the drawing I have just finished," she said, holding one up to him, and anxious to change the cur- rent of his thoughts. " Are you pleased with it?" " Mr. Herbert will be enchanted!" " Never mind others — what do you think — does it quite satisfy you?" " I think it exquisite — as every thing you touch must be. But now I look into it — you really have surpassed yourself! Those trees glistening with rain drops, look so cool ! Those shrubs and the grass, so fresh and green, have just the appearance of a recent shower; and I seem to smell the keen perfume crushed from them by the rain. That little rivulet is charming, as it runs along there under those lush weeds, and turns down by the stile, on which that boy is sitting in perfect summer contentment, fling- ing into the water the pieces of stick he breaks off from the hedge.— I long to be in the rogue's place — with some one by my side." " I'm so happy! I have taken such pains with this picture. Look close at it, and see if you cannot trace its meaning." "The clouds rolled away in the distance, and fringed with gold — the clear blue sky — glistening, radiant flowers — " tl My past life is in those clouds," she added, gravely, 4 * my present happiness is in the sky and flowers. That boy is "Walter; that rivulet is the stream of our happy days. The picture is for you, dearest." "Forme,"lsola?" " Yes, to-day is your birth-day — this is my remem- brance of it." "So it is. — I had quite forgotten it. And how am I to thank you?" THE BIRTHDAY. 289 " By being happy." " I am supremely so." " Not while you are jealous." "lam so no longer. — Isola," said he, after a pause, 11 in four months hence you will be mine : can you not shorten the time?" " I told you to be happy," she said, laughing, " and you promised obedience. Is this the way you fulfil promises?" There was no resisting this. Harry felt that she loved him. True, her love was very different from the eager passion which devoured him; true, she was calm, pensive, melancholy, though affectionate, with the love more of a sister ; but still she did love him, she was affectionate, and she loved no one else. She had made him comprehend her feeling for Percy. "Remember," she said, " that although the wrong he did me almost broke my heart, yet it was the deed of a day, it was only one action; but the years of hap- piness, and constant love, which I passed with him before that, — the "... little, nameless, unremembered acts Of kindness and of love. which endeared him to me — these I cannot forget. If I remember the suffering he has caused me, I also remember all the pleasure. I love him for that pleasure : his image is the central figure of a world of sweet associations. But were I to see him now, he would only recal dark and bitter thoughts, and rip up wounds that bleed no longer." " Sister Isola, 5 ' said little Walter, bounding into the room. "Well, my pet?" " Will you go with us to Richmond to-morrow?" U 290 BANTHORPE. " No, dear, I have work to do." " Do you like work better than play?" "No," she replied, laughing, and patting the inge- nuous face that was turned upwards to her; "but, as I often tell you, Walter, I must work, and very hard too, to get my bread." " You always say that," said the child. " You seem to think bread more valuable than pudding /" Isola caught him in her arms, and stifled her laughter with kissing the young philosopher. THE DEE AM. 291 CHAPTER VII. THE DEEAM. Oh ! come viva in mezzo alle tenebre Sorgea la dolce imago e gli occhi chiusi La contemplavan sotto alle palpebre ! Oil come soavissimi dhTusi Moti par l'ossa mi serpeano I oh come Mille nelT alma instabili, confusi Pensieri si volgean ! Giacomo Leopardi: Canti. Quando in snl tempo che piu leve il sonno E piu soave le pupille adombra, Stettemi allato e riguardommi in viso H simulacro di colei che amore, Prima insegnommi, e poi lasciommi in pianto. Ibid. It is a bright morning in spring. The lark is up, and cutting through the sky, pouring forth his joy in such a gush of song, that the rapid notes seem to trip each other up in eagerness of utterance. The trees and grass are spangled with the morning dew; all is bright, fresh, and exhilarating as the thoughts of youth. Isola rises from her bed with slow> reluctant grace ; for she has passed the night in dreams of ecstasy, from which it was a pang to awake. u2 292 RANTHORPE. She dreamt that she was in a thick, entangled wood. She was plucking the woodbine, and the fragrant flowers that grew up to her hand. Suddenly a rustle of the leaves startled her, and turning, she beheld Percy at her side. He was pale and care-worn ; a strange light shone in his eyes ; a radiant smile played round his lips, and around all his person there was a gleam of glory. She held out her hand to him in silence; in silence he took it, and gazed wistfully into her eyes. " Do you forgive me?" said he at last. His voice seriously affected her ; it seemed like a stream of warm music; it seemed like music, and yet it seemed to pour along her nerves trembling and warm. She could not answer him. He spoke again, and she found herself in his arms, thrilled with his kisses. And they wandered through the wood, plucking the loveliest flowers, breathing the tenderest vows, and planning events for the future. Their hearts were indis- solubly united in one delicious feeling. The pale moon smiled upon them through the enwoven branches ; the breeze sighed mournfully amongst the leaves, and an- swered to their sighs; they walked on air; a spirit seemed to permeate their beings^ filling them with new life; and the soft murmur of each other's voice stirred their hearts strangely. She awoke, and the dull white curtains met her en- chanted gaze ; she awoke, and her lover was afar. She en- deavoured to sleep again, that she might feel the rapture of her dream ; but in vain. Pensive and sad, she rose, and began her toilet. She, nevertheless, had dreamed of him, and could again conjure up that vision, though knowing it to be a THE DREAM. 293 vision. She had dreamed of him, and that dream haunted her like a passion. Who does not know this feeling? Who is there that has not spent some blissful moments in a dream, with perhaps some person they have never spoken to, but of whom they continue to think, on waking, with unspeakable tenderness? It is one of the subtle mysteries of our nature ; it is one of the manifold, unappreciable influences which mould and modify the condition of the mind, how, or why, we know not. It is one of those things, trivial in their origin, but important in their effects, which make up that which {if I may venture on the phrase) I would call the atmos- phere of life : for we breathe in it, we live by it. More good will is generated in happy dreams than any one is aware of. If a coolness separates two friends, let one dream pleasantly of the other, and his heart will yearn for reconciliation. If lovers quarrel, a dream unites them again. The mind invests the reality with the splendour of its own imagination; it refuses to believe the object less good or great, than it has known it in those brief moments of communion. I have known a dream hang about me for days together; exciting me to actions which cooler moments have condemned. Who, when he thus in- terrogates his own experience, will wonder at the quick credulity, which, giving forms to its conceptions, believes the voices which resounded in a dream, were voices from above ; warnings or counsels addressed to no mortal sense, but infused into the immortal soul ? Haunted by her dream, Isola was suddenly shaken by the sound of Percy's voice in the adjoining room, calling her to come to him. It was some moments before she could persuade herself that it was not an illusion; but his impassioned accents once more thrilled her with delight, 294 EANTHOEPE. and rushing into the room, she fell into his arms, uttering a scream of joy. O joy ! O rapture ! It was indeed Percy; — it was in- deed her lover ! It was her dream realised ! This was no vision; she felt it was not, as she felt his heart heating be- neath her own, and his breath mingling with her own. They " Saw each other's dark eyes darting light Into each other — and beholding this, Their lips drew near, and clung into a kiss." And thus they rested in each other's arms : speechless, because their hearts were full, and because both feared to break the charm. Much had they suffered since their last embrace ! — fretful sorrow and sick disappointment ; but here they were again united, with hearts untamed by sor- row, crowding an eternity into a kiss ! They were both much changed in appearance since their last meeting. Suffering, illness, and study, had thinned his cheek, and given a more spiritual delicacy to his brow. He had, moreover, changed from a boy into a man ; and though perhaps scarcely so handsome, he had grown more interesting. Suffering, and brooding medita- tion, had also touched with melancholy Hues the noble brow and meaning-full mouth of Isola, robbing her of some of that naive, youthful charm which had so exquisitely tem- pered her august and queenly bearing. You could not look upon her without at once divining that she had long been a prey to some silent sorrow; but you also saw that if she had struggled, she had gained the victory at last. She took his head between her hands, and gazed in- tensely at him, to convince her exulting heart that his presence was not a vision. She twined her fingers in his THE DREAM. 295 silky hair with a sort of impatience, and gazed upon his lovely face upturned to hers in ardent adoration. He pressed her to him, and kissed her luxuriant hair which fell in disorder over her shoulders, for she had not stopped to bind it up. And it was not till their first transports were over that he became conscious of not having asked her forgiveness of the past. He began to stammer his excuses : " Dearest Percy," she said, " do not recal the past — not even to weep over it, as an error. You need no excuses — it is enough for me to see you here, to feel your hand, to tremble at the sound of your voice — oh ! do not look back on the past !" " Blessed one I" he exclaimed, " you forgive me then? you give me again that heart which this time I shall know how to prize? You are again my love — my wife ?" m Wife !" she shrieked, starting up, and recoiling from him. i( Are you not my Isola ?" " O ! it was a dream — and I am thus awakened!" She fell senseless at his feet. Alarmed and surprised, he took her in his arms, and raised her to the sofa, chafing her hands, and kissing her lips. He called on her, implored her to answer him, but she heard him not. " I have killed her," he frantically exclaimed. A deep sigh heaved her breast, and she slowly opened her eyes. He was so overjoyed at this sign of life that he nearly stifled her with kisses. She pushed him from her, with a convulsive effort, exclaiming : " Percy ! Percy ! — do not touch me — I am another's I" "Another's ?" said he, puzzled yet alarmed. 296 RANTHORPE. " Oh! yes," she sobbed, " it was a dream — a dream! Percy, I am engaged" " Impossible — you ?" "Too true!— -too true!" A long silence ensued. She gave way to her feelings of despair, and he to his of resentment. When he heard her pronounce those ter- rible words, he felt it as an insult. She was thinking of poor Harry; thinking of her folly, in believing that her love for Percy was dead, because it was silent. " And you are engaged," he said, bitterly. " Alas! — alas ! — but hear me, Percy, before you judge me." "No; it is enough for me to have lost you," he an- swered, rising from his seat. " I cannot reproach you — I ought to have expected this — I deserved it." " Percy," she said; and he could not resist the plaintive reproachfulness of her tone ; so reseating himself, he lis- tened to the history of her life since their last meeting up to the evening of her betrothment. " He offered me his hand," she continued, iC as he had given me his heart, frankly, but humbly. He knew I did not love him : he knew I loved another : still he offered me his hand. My position was perilous ; I had lost you, as I thought, for ever. I had no friends. He, above all men, was the one I most esteemed — most loved : loved with a pure and lasting affection, quite capable of happiness in marriage. In his affection I saw a home of peace and content — and therefore did I pledge him my hand — I never repented it till now!" And she buried her face within her hands. This simple tale of a suffering he himself had caused, THE DKEAM. 297 oppressed Ranthorpe with a dreadful sense of his treacherous conduct; and he felt that he deserved to lose this priceless treasure, as Harry deserved to win it. He was stupified with this thought; he was as one crushed to earth, without power of escape; he felt that the present moment must decide his fate, and he felt that the decision would be un- favourable. Tears came to his relief, and he wept like a child. They wept together in silence, broken only by their sobs. They were both devouring their misery — both driving deeper in, with savage hands, the barbed arrows of remorse. And yet she loved him ! Could he, then, renounce her? "You cannot — shall not be another's!" he at length exclaimed. " You are mine — mine only !" She sobbed, but uttered no word. "You love me, Isola — do you not? Answer me: is not your heart mine? — your soul mine?" Her sobs became hysterical, but still she spoke not. " Isola, dearest Isola, I implore you, answer me. Tell me that you do not love me, and — I will leave — leave you at once." His voice faltered, but she trembled more be- neath its tones, than he beneath his anguish. She was silent. A sudden ray seemed to streak across the darkness of her soul, revealing there a duty, and a glimpse of hope. The duty of fulfilling her vow to Harry commanded her to prevaricate with Percy. " If he thinks I love him still," she thought, " I am lost." She raised her head, and looked him steadfastly in the face. " Isola, decide my fate. Is there another tie besides your vow which binds you to him?" 298 RANTHORPB. "There is!" she answered earnestly, glad of being able thus to escape a falsehood. His lower jaw suddenly fell, like that of one smitten by death. He gazed upon her with a look of wonderment and sorrow, and sighing deeply, faltered out : et May you be happy — very happy !" — and moved towards the door. As he placed his hand upon the door, he was startled by one convulsive sob, that seemed to burst her bosom — he turned round, and saw that she had fallen back upon the sofa, prostrate with grief, her face hidden in her hands; her sobs thrilled him, and he sighed heavily. She looked up, and beheld him gazing on her in inexpressible rapture. " Percy !" she murmured, and closed her eyes again. " Yes, your Percy — for ever yours ! We will part no more ! — we will grieve no more ! You love me ! You are mine ! — say that you are mine ! — say that you will not foolishly condemn us both to everlasting sorrow — " ie Percy, I have pledged my hand to another — I must and will fulfil my vows." " No, no, no — your vows are mine. I have a prior claim — a stronger, deeper claim : I have your heart ! Oh ! think well, Isola, before you act, and think upon the con- sequences of that act ! You love me — think of that ! Think of your lot, joined to one, and loving another ! Think of all the treasures of your life thus wasted, all the dearest feelings of your nature crushed, withered, turned back upon themselves. Oh ! think what it is that you are about to do !" " My duty !" she replied firmly. " I may be miserable — I shall be so — but I shall be innocent — my conscience will be light." THE DREAM. 299 " Light? Will not my fate burden it? will not my despair blacken it? Will not your own grief trouble it? You are mad — Isola, I love you! Is not that claim enough — does not your conscience bow to that? Are you not mine — mine in heart and soul? Have I not a husband's love, and shall I be debarred of a husband's right? Isola, I love you. Can he say as much? Has lie loved you so long? Has he been tried in the fire of temptation. Has he known sickness and sorrow, and pined for your presence as the healing angel? Has he been influenced by adulation, intoxicated by vanity, dazzled by splendour, enervated by luxury — and, after all, returned to you and poverty, content to pass his life by your side? Isola, I love you ! I have loved you from my boyhood — I loved you in my manhood: you, and you only ! In a moment of distorted ambition I was deluded by a coquette. She dazzled me, she threw a mist before my eyes, that hid me from myself. This moment of delirious error I have bitterly repented; I have wept over it — I have borne the stings of remorse — but I have loved you through all, and have lived but in the hope of being par- doned by you." Isola continued to weep in silence ; at length she said : u Percy, I did not need your words to picture what my fate would be, away from you. I felt it from the first, and, feeling it, resolved to bear it. I have borne misery ere now — worse, indeed, than any yet in store for me — and my greatest comforter in that misery was he who is to be my husband. I cannot forget his kindness ; I cannot in wantonness bring sorrow to his hearth, who never brought it to that of others. No : I may have to bear a heavy weight of suffering — I will pray to God to give me strength to bear it." 300 EANTHOEPE. " And you sacrifice my happiness — sacrifice your own." " He loves me — Has no other thought — no other hope, than that of calling me his wife." Ranthorpe stamped with rage. "Do not ask me to commit a crime" she continued, " for it would be one to wrong him" " You are mad !" he shrieked. "No, Percy, lam miserable! But God will support me. I have devoted myself to the happiness of another; for that I live." Ranthorpe looked at her, bewildered, awed by her calmness. That simple girl, covering a breaking heart with an heroic firmness, seemed to him so sacred in her grief, and in her virtue so sublime, that his own selfish promptings were silenced. Her deep voice was unfalter- ing — her manner fixedly calm; but the anguish which distorted her haggard face told terribly of the struggle she had endured. At all times there was a grandeur in the simplicity and majestic repose of her manner; but now, when the whole strength of her nature was sum- moned to vanquish the most fearful struggle that a loving woman could endure, she struck Ranthorpe with a sense of awe he could not overcome. Gazing at her, he plainly saw that she might regret, but would never waver. Like the Indian wife about to ascend the pyre, and join her husband in the grave, she might regret the sacrifice of this fair world, but would not flinch from the accomplishment of her duty, because duty to her was more sacred than life was fair. Majestic in her sorrow, as in her motives, Ranthorpe then, for the first time, felt the immensity of his loss. He took her hand with mournful tenderness, and kissing it with deep respect, said : THE DREAM. 301 " Isola, I deserve to suffer — my wickedness has brought us to this strait — it is just that I should rue it. Your own great heart dictates to you this sacrifice, and what your heart dictates must be right. May it enable you to bear the burden lightly ! Be happy ! — I do not say forget me — but think of me as one who henceforth is to you a brother. We shall meet no more. But we shall be present to each other in thought." His voice became more and more husky as he proceeded, but making a sudden effort, he said, " God bless you, Isola, — God bless you." And she was alone. Sick at heart she sank upon a chair. She would have recalled him and unsaid her words — but she had not strength. A dizzy faintness overcame her: wild, be- wildering, tumultuous thoughts oppressed her, and she could not speak. When Harry came in, a short while after, he found her delirious. A brain fever, for some days, at least, kept her from her sense of desolation. \ 302 KANTHORPE. CHAPTER VIII. WAKING DREAMS AND WAKING SADNESS. I did hear you talk Far above singing ! After you were gone I grew acquainted with my heart ! and search d What stirred it so: alas! I found it love. Beaumont and Fletcher: Philaster. The sweet thoughts, the sure hopes, thy protested faith will cause me to embrace thy shadow constantly in mine arms, of the which by strong imagination I will make a substance." Lyly: Alexander and Campaspe. Bello il tuo manto, o divo cielo; e bella Sei tu, rorida terra. Ahi di cotesta Infinita belta parte nessuna Alia misera Saffo i numi e l'empia Sorte non fenno. GiacomoLeopardi: CantL When Isola was sufficiently recovered, she told Harry vaguely of having seen Ranthorpe (which Harry knew, as it was he who had informed Ranthorpe of her retreat), and that they had " met for the last time." Then "begged him never to refer to the subject again. From the manner in which she spoke, he was completely deceived as to the na- ture of their interview. He believed that Ranthorpe's pre- sence had only recalled a poignant sense of his treachery; WAKING DREAMS AND WAKING SADNESS. 303 and that probably they had come to bitter altercations on the subject. But she seemed shattered by the blow. She rarely smiled, and never laughed. She was perpetually plunged in reverie, from which she aroused herself by a long and painful sigh. Poor Leo was neglected ; but with the marvellous saga- city which dogs display, he seemed to understand her grief, to sympathise with it, and respect it. His large eyes were constantly fixed on her in mournful lovingness, and he would gently lick her hand as if to reassure and comfort her; but she seemed seldom aware of his pre- sence. Harry, deceived by her words, never interpreted these re- veries aright, and seldom remarked them. He knew that she was melancholy — he knew her wounds were bleeding, and that time alone could staunch them. She seldom wept, but the colour never rose into her ashen cheek ; and there was an inward look about the eyes which betokened a complete withdrawal from the outward world, to contemplation of the inward. She lived, indeed, no longer with her senses. Her days were passed in re- veries; her nights in fantastic dreams. Her language assumed a mystic colouring; and her paintings were so bizarre that people complained of them as unintelligible and unlike nature. Unintelligible ! why every leaf had its meaning, every tint its feeling ! Those flowers that drooped so pensively — those weeds so tangled and torn — those lilies uprooted and thrown upon the bye path to be crushed beneath the foot of the passer by — those cottages so silent and deserted, with a lean and melancholy dog watching beside the door — those scenes of desolation and violence — had all to her 304 BANTHOKPE. deep meaning, for they were the symbols of her sufferings, as she found them expressed by nature. In the midst of her work, she would often let her pencil or her needle fall, and with fixed but vacant eyes sit speechless for more than an hour at a time, absorbed in some painful or delicious reverie. She was then with her lover. His exquisite face was upturned to hers ; his dreamy eyes were speaking to her soul a lan- guage only intelligible to her; — his voice whispering in her ear the music of a lover's flattery and a lover's hope. She was acting again that blissful dream wherein they rambled through the mystic wood. She spoke to him — and her heart framed his replies. She smiled on him, and felt the warm pressure of his arm about her waist. Thus to her was the ideal made real : she lived in dreams, her waking moments were feverish with sorrow and re- morse. Little Walter was forced to leave England with his mother. Isola wept for him, but not as she would have wept a little while before. She had almost lost her consciousness of external things, and mingled her grief for Walter with her own peculiar sorrow. She had, in truth, overrated her strength: she had im- posed a burden on herself no woman can bear. She was no longer in the same state of mind as she had been before. She then thought — believed that Percy had ceased to love her. A sense of injury and of maidenly pride, made her shut her heart against him ; she now knew not only that he loved her still, but that she had never ceased to love him also — that her affection had slept, and was awakened by a touch. In the first belief she had only two resources ; suicide or endurance: in the second, also, only two; duty or happiness; happiness purchased by the sacrifice of duty, WAKING DKEAMS AND WAKING SADNESS. 305 duty purchased by the sacrifice of happiness. As Schiller finely says : " O wie gross wird unsre Tugend Wenn unser Herz bei ihrer Uebung bricht !" To evils, when there is no remedy, we make up our minds : we are not every moment irritated by hope deferred. It is when the remedy is possible, yet does not come, — it is when hope is strong, but never is fulfilled, — that the mind is racked with agonies of suffering. Put a bird into a cage, and (having tried all its fastenings and seen escape to be impossible) it will chirrup with content, and take its daily food in peace : but tie that bird's leg by a string, and it will flutter to be free ; refuse all food ; all conso- lation; and break its yearning heart. The bright Heaven and the free air are above and around it, inviting it; one petty barrier alone prevents its springing into the air. It feels the power to fly — it rises and flies — to the length of the string! This constant endeavour, and this constant failure, is the misery. Affliction may be borne; but it must be irremediable, before it can be borne with pa- tience. Isola was fast sinking under this wearing struggle of her conscience with her instincts; and even Harry at last remarked that some secret sorrow was consuming her. He could not believe it to be grief for Walter's loss — could it be for Percy's loss? One evening as he passed beneath her window, he heard her singing. The pathos of her voice arrested him, and the tears rose to his eyes, as he distinctly caught this verse : " A present a peine j 'endure Ce qui me charmait autrefois; Du ruisseau je fuis le murmure; Je crains l'ombre triste des bois ; X 306 EANTHORPE. Je maudis l'epine piquante Du rosier que ma main planta; Tout m' importune, tout me tormente— Rien ne me plait — il n'est plus la!" Her voice was broken by Her sobs as she reached the last line; and he moved away dizzy with the horrible thoughts that crowded on his brain. THE SACRIFICE. 307 CHAPTEE IX. THE SACRIFICE. Oh. je t'ai aim£e, simple fleur que le vent brisait sur sa tige, pour ta beaute delicate et pure, et je t'ai cueillie esperant garder pour moi ton suave "parfum, qui s'exhalait a l'ombre et dans la solitude. Mais la brise me l'a emporte en passant, et ton sein n'a pu le retenir! Est ce une raison pour que je te haisse et te foule aux pieds ? Non ! je te reposerai doucement dans la rosee ou je t'ai prise, et je te dirai adieu, parceque mon souffle ne peut plus te faire vivre, et qu'il en est un autre dans ton atmosphere qui doit te relever et te ranimer. Refleuris done, 6 mon beau lis! je ne te toucherais plus! George Sand. Harry from this time suffered all the miseries of doubt and dread. He began by suspecting that, in spite of her assertions, Percy really had her heart. He watched her narrowly. He scrutinized the events which had oc- curred — her wrong — her second betrothment — her meet- ing with her first love — her subsequent sorrow. " She loves him ! — Yes — yet she would spare me ! Yes, that must be the cause of her grief. Oh, God ! what a thought ; to owe her to a sense of duty — pity I" Men are rarely moved to tears ; and his grief was too dull and stupifying to find relief in tears. But he walked up and down his room like a criminal awaiting execution, x2 308 EANTHORPE. who knows his doom is inevitable, and yet cannot believe that he must die. A terrible struggle took place in his breast. But it ended in virtue subduing instinct. He resolved to relin- quish his claim, and purchase her happiness at the sacri- fice of his own. But he found it impossible to speak on the subject with Isola. Whenever he alluded to her melancholy, she asked him if she had not cause? Whenever he approached the name of Percy, she put her finger on his lips. By the sudden shiver that ran over her frame when it was alluded to, Harry saw how full of anguish the subject was; and at times doubted whether she really did love Percy. In this state of fluctuation he remained until the event recorded in the last chapter brought things to a crisis. From a narrow scrutiny of her countenance and manner, he divined pretty well the history of her grief. Unable longer to doubt, he was resolved to act. After quitting Isola on that memorable day, Ranthorpe returned home broken-spirited. He could no longer work — he had no object. What was popularity to him? Noise, mere noise ! And yet so little is a poet master of his own faculties, so little can he resolve to write or to be silent, that Percy, convinced of the nothingness of popularity, feeling that he had no object in life which should make him court the suffrages of the world, nevertheless was soon afterwards enthusiastically pursuing the plans of a new work, with the same eagerness, the same delight, as if his existence depended upon its success. He was one day sitting in his study with Wynton, fondly detailing to his faithful friend the nature of the work upon which he was then engaged, when Harry THE SACRIFICE. 309 walked into the room. Percy rose surprised; and an- swering the frank gesture of Harry's outstretched hand "by a cold bow, motioned him to a chair. Harry under- stood the reception from a rival; but he was soiely hurt at it nevertheless. Ranthorpe was determined that his visitor should begin the conversation. Wynton looked on in uneasy amazement, and knew not what to conclude from Harry's altered appearance; for his cheeks were burning with a hectic glow, and his eyes had a strange wildness in them Wynton had never seen before. After a few minutes of this chilling silence, Harry said : " Can I speak with you alone?" Wynton rose ; but Ranthorpe checked him, saying: 1 'Don't stir; there is nothing Mr. Cavendish can say to me that you may not hear." Then turning to Harry with exasperating coolness: " You were about to observe — " " What I have to say is entirely a private matter." " You must excuse me then if I decline attending to it." " Percy," said Wynton, " I must go; my presence is positively indelicate." " Your presence is indispensable. I wish to have some one by my side who will be some restraint upon me." Harry was galled; he knew not what to say, or what course to take. " Percy !" he exclaimed. " My name is Ranthorpe, sir." " You shall not irritate me, do what you will. I came to speak with you about Isola — now will you listen?" " Nothing you can say to me respecting Miss Churchill can have any interest for me," replied Ranthorpe, 310 Ex\NTHOEPE. the beating of his pulse belying the coldness of his manner. A thought flashed across Harry's mind, that possibly he had been mistaken with respect to Isola's grief — per- haps Percy did not love her after all. He started up, and hurriedly saying, u Good day," left the room. " How could you treat him so, Percy?" said Wynton. " I hate him !" " Your old friend?" « My rival. My ungenerous rival. He knows — he must know Isola loved me; yet he has her word — she is engaged to him — and " Here the door opened, and they both started as Harry again appeared before them. " I will not be frustrated, " he said, 6t I will learn the truth. Since I must speak before Wynton, I here so- lemnly ask you if you still love Isola? Your answer I can read in your face. As you value her happiness and your own I charge you, tell me whether at your last meeting you talked with her of your love; and whether she told you of her engagement." Ranthorpe got up from his chair, and with intense scorn, answered : e ' Jealousy has many ingenious devices — could you not hit upon one which would answer your purpose quite as well, and not be quite so insolent." " Jealousy?" echoed Harry, while a bitter smile faded on his quivering lip. " Rivals," added Ranthorpe with increasing scorn, " are usually defied, not interrogated !" " Percy, Percy, have you not nobility enough at heart to understand me? Cease that scorn — do not make me forget myself! I am not jealous. Jealous, indeed! — ■ THE SACRIFICE. 311 Well, well! — I ask you whether you spoke of love to her, and whether she rejected you because she was affi- anced to another. I feel she did; but 1 ask you that I may be sure that when I yield up my claim to be her husband, I am acting uprightly. You stare. You look incredulous? — Why, man, I love her — love her better than myself! Now do you understand me? I, who would die for her, shall I do her an irreparable wrong? I, who worship her, shall I permit her to waste her life on me, she loving another? No, no, no! Tell me that she rejected you, because her word was pledged to me — and she is yours ! Now do you understand me?" Ranthorpe gazed at him for a few seconds as if bewil- dered. Then recovering himself he walked up to him, holding out his hand in silence. In silence it was taken, and one long significant pressure was all these two bruised hearts could find to express their emotions. 312 RANTHOKPE. CHAPTER X. RECONCILIATION. Alii, el silencio de la noche fria, El jasmin que en las redes se enlazaba, El cristal de la fuente, que corria, El arroyo, que a solas murmuraba, El viento, que en las hojas se movia, El aura, que en las floras respiraba Todo era amor. Calderon: Cisma de Inglaterra, Que causa puede haber sido La que llego a separar Dos corazones tan finos? Mokatin. On that wedding-day which had so strangely been fixed upon by Harry as the day which should witness his sacrifice; on that wedding-day which had approached without either Isola or her betrothed being aware of it, so little had their thoughts for some weeks been fixed upon marriage; on that day Isola had been deeply en- gaged with a drawing of more than usual mysticism. It was wild as a Salvator, tender as a Claude. It was a mere nothing — and yet every thing — a " study," and yet full of meaning. To ordinary eyes it was but a rocky RECONCILIATION. 313 pass, with trees, flowers, weeds, and fragments of fallen stone, all in inextricable confusion. But as you looked closer its meaning gradually unfolded itself. There was desolation in those blasted jagged crags around which grew such luxuriant vegetation ; in the sombre blackness of the earth, from which the lush weeds grew — the weeds themselves confused and suffering, entangled, bent, and broken — tortured by overgrowth, yet full of beauty; there was desolation in the booming, roaring, flashing waterfall, writhing and hissing from a melancholy cleft; in the trunks of ancient trees twisted into fantastic shapes, branchless, hollow, scathed with lightning. And above all was the calm blue heaven, cloudless and windless, a solemn mockery of the desolation upon earth. There was a sombre irony in the picture. It showed the hideous skeleton beneath the mask of life. It was the symbolised sadness of one who had peered too curiously into the depths of her own heart. And yet this bitter mockery of life — this ghastly ana- lysis of irony, which displayed the skeleton beneath the beauteous form — this consciousness of her wound and scornful laying of it open, was not without its fascination to the artist. There is a dalliance with misery, which has its voluptuous orgies, powerful as those of the senses. There is a passion for rising above sorrow, and looking down upon it in painful scorn: playing with it, smiling at it — smiling amidst tears. In this mood Isola touched and retouched her picture. Her brush seemed as if it would never quit her hand; each stroke served only to bring out more fully the contrast of life and death — beauty and deformity — enjoyment and torture — contained in her conception. No clump of moss but had its meaning; no blade of grass rose higher than 314 RANTHORPE. its neighbours without some ironical intention. The very masses of rock which encumbered the valley bore in one way or another the impress of this irony: here, one frag- ment was richly covered with lichens, while its side, partly exposed, was black and scathed; there, another fragment, rugged and barren, had green and speckled lizards crowd- ing from its fissures. In the evening Harry came and found her still occupied with her picture. She was greatly excited, and talked of little but of Art. " Art enshrines the great sadness of the world," she said; " it purifies, elevates, incarnates sadness in beauty, and thus preserves it. Without Art man would forget the sufferings which humanity has endured. Suffering, being disorder, is perishable ; yet it does not deserve wholly to perish, and Art enshrines it." " Should we not rather wish it to perish?" said he. " No; we need it constantly with us, to teach us charity — we need it to teach us fortitude. I should go mad, if I could not read in the pictures, poems, and melodies of great artists all that I endure ! I see they have en- dured them, and yet lived on. I trace the sadness of the artist in his lines, or in his faltering rhythm. I see his sadness underneath the gaiety with which he strives to mask it." " Does not this depend rather upon your mood, than upon their meaning?" "No; sadness is everywhere written on their works as it was engraven on their hearts. What sorrow is implied in the ever-present irony of Shakspeare ! What sorrow renders touching the measured stateliness of Milton ! Then think of Dante, grim with a thousand woes ! Think of the pensive sadness of Raphael, the austerity of Fra Bar- RECONCILIATION. 315 tolomeo, the irony of Albert Diirer ! And oh ! the infinity of sorrow in the works of Beethoven; piercing, plaintive, exquisite, unalterable ! It is no common spirit, struggling with no common pain, which pierces his melo- dies with such plaints of woe ! And then Mozart — what quiet pathos amidst his smiles — what settled melancholy diffused through all his beauty." There was a pause. Her brush again struck out a few significant tints. She set it down again, and said : " It is in Art that I commune with those subtler por- tions of experience which words have no power to express. Art gives enduring form to the supersensuous in life. It gathers to its bsoom all the sufferings of Humanity, soothes them, embalms them, and thus becomes an everlasting monument of human experience." She stopped, but her lips continued to move, as if en- deavouring to speak. She rose and walked to the window, and threw it open. The moon was hidden behind a cloud, and the foliage which spread before her window, was dark as night ; nothing but an indistinguishable mass of )liage met her gaze. The sweet scent of flowers en- tering at the window, had a peculiar effect upon her nerves, and awakened strange associations. All was so calm, nothing interrupted the current of her thoughts. Harry watched her in silence; listened to her gentle breathing ; watched the rise and fall of her exquisite bosom as it panted beneath her dress; and puzzled him- self as to how he should break to her his resolution. While she stood there wrapt in thought, the moon slowly emerged from the cloud, and streamed upon her. She was thinking of Percy, when a rapid association car- ried her back in thought to that evening when, standing 316 EANTHORPE. at the same window, and under the same moon, she plighted her vow to Harry. And this was its anniver- sary. " Come here, dear one," she said. He rose, approached, and took the hand she held out to him. " Have you forgotten this day?" she asked. " It was to be our wedding-day." A strange and sickly smile passed over his face. " You do not answer me." " Isola, dearest Isola, forget that evening." She started, and looked eagerly at him. "You promised me a widowed heart. — I should have been the happiest of men! — but your heart was not widowed! — I — don't heed these tears — I'm agitated. Well. — In a word, I forego my claim ! — I ask no fulfil- ment of a vow — how could I ask it? — rashly made, and bitterly repented. You love Percy Ranthorpe — he loves you. Be happy with him — it is all I wish. Let me be your friend — a brother whom you love. All I think of, all I care for, is to see you happy." She stared at him with vacant eyes, as one who rather felt than comprehended his meaning. Speechless and mo- tionless for a few moments, she then touched his forehead with her cold and quivering lips, murmuring : 11 You humiliate me — I am very wicked !" " You are an angel, whom I love too well to see un- happy." " I did not think," she sobbed, " that I should ever give pain to one who has been to me what you have been." " Isola, Isola, let me have my reward; let me see you happy !" EECONCILIATION. 317 She raised her tearful eyes to him, and after one long look of unutterable gratitude, gave vent to her tears. She wept over the duty she was sacrificing to love; he wept over the love he was sacrificing to duty. A carriage drove up, and put an end to this painful scene. Fanny Wilmington stepped out, and was soon beside her friend ; and soon made confidante of what had taken place. Why did she suddenly feel so elated? and why did she gaze at Harry with such intense fervour? and why was she so eloquent in his praise? She knew not ; all she knew was that the communication just made seemed to remove a load from off her heart. And it was with a strange flutter that she accepted his invita- tion to take a turn in the garden with him, so as to leave Isola with Percy, whose knock then announced him. Over the meeting of the lovers I draw a veil. The burst of rapture with which they clasped each other in a wild embrace — the many inquiries — the fond regrets and thrilling hopes — it is out of my power to convey. Let me, therefore, leave them to their happiness. 318 BANTHORPE. CHAPTER XI. LOVE IS BLIND; COUCH NOT HIS EYES. There are a sort of spirits fall but once, But that once is perdition. Per me si va nella citta dolente; Per me si va nelT eterno dolore; Per me si ya tra la perduta gente. GlJIDONE. Dante. God! O God! that it were possible To UDdo things done; to call back yesterday! That time could turn up his swift sandy glass, To untell the days, and to redeem these hours ! Hetwood : Woman killed with kindness. Having thus seen Ranthorpe's battered boat at length put into port ; let us see what fate awaits Florence Haw- bucke, whom we left battling with the waves. Florence was in love ; and her husband had no suspicion of it ! His jealousy had indeed somewhat abated, but its em- bers were still burning. What made him blind to Florence's love was the absurdly mistaken notion he had formed of her. He thought her frivolous, and that, therefore, she would only love a frivolous man : strange error ! He knew her first complaint against him had been his want of liveliness, LOVE IS BLIND; COUCH NOT HIS EYES. 319 and imagined that she would only love some gay and lively man who could amuse her. This, which at no time would have been true, was singularly false under present circumstances. Florence was wretched^ and needed sympathy, not live- liness. Shakspeare, who has sounded every note of human feeling, has not left this one untouched. The officious waiting- woman would charm a queenly sorrow with music, but the sufferer replies : * Thou shouldst please me better wouldst thou weep." Song may distract the gay, or lay its heavy burden of delicious pain upon the spirits of the happy; but grief demands sympathy — tears seek for tears — and sorrows love to jostle with sorrows greater than themselves, to learn, in the contact, humility and comfort. While, therefore, her husband would assuredly have shot the first lively young man who had the bad fortune of attracting much of Florence's attention, he witnessed without the shadow of a suspicion the intimacy growing between her and Bourne. The melancholy and unsuccess- ful dramatist, whose plays Sir Frederick had read with merited contempt, was, however, the only really danger- ous rival admitted to Florence's intimacy. Sir Frederick had too profound a contempt for him to fear him. Besides, it never occurred to him that a heavy melancholy man could interest the frivolous Florence. But that melan- choly man interested the wretched Florence ! Bourne was naturally of a bilious temperament; and continued ill-success, acting upon an idolatry of Byron, had fostered in him a very respectable amount of misan- thropy. He was intensely vain ; and was incessantly en- deavouring to assume some imposing attitude before the 320 RANTHOEPE. world. As an orator, a legislator, and a poet, he had ludicrously failed. As a misanthrope he had gained tolerable success in society : for people avoided him with unfeigned alacrity. Florence was attracted to him by his sorrows. They spoke vaguely of woes which had, in both their cases, embittered an ardent youth — of deceptions which had blighted a believing heart. They were eloquent in scorn of the pretended force of love. In this Florence was serious, Bourne acting. Strange that this actress should in turn become a dupe ! Bourne, gratified at so credulous a listener, made up a history of his life, smacking greatly of the circulating library, but avidly listened to and believed by Florence. He had at first no motive in this beyond the mere delight of making himself the hero of a fictitious narrative — of placing himself in an effective attitude. But when she confided to him her history, — when he had shed tears with her over that confidence, — new thoughts, wild and turbu- lent, hurried across his mind. He felt that when man and woman exchange confidences, there is but one step more for them to take ; and that is to exchange vows. Florence, as I have more than once intimated, was not possessed of much heart. She had more sensibility than depth of feeling. Her nervous temperament and her education together had made her somewhat romantic — that is to say, avid of emotions ; but hers was not a loving nature. She loved with her head more than with her heart. And it was owing precisely to this distinction that she was led away by the vulgar acting of Bourne. Her imagination was inflamed. She seemed in his history to have read the narrative of a life which she was made to render glorious and happy. Bourne was the loving, sen- LOVE IS BLIND; COUCH NOT HIS EYES. 321 sitive, suffering heart, she had been seeking all her life. With him she would fly away from the odious tyranny of her cold-hearted husband. She but awaited Bourne's avowal. That avowal was made one night at a ball. Bourne, who was a great coward, approached the subject in the most guarded manner ; but her encouragement soon dis- pelled his fears. He returned home that night in an intoxication of vanity he had never known before. She loved him ! She was his ! The beautiful and admired Lady Hawbucke, his ! He could not sleep that night. Nor could she : but for a different reason. The crime she was about to commit — and fears of her husband's vengeance — tortured her all night. Often did she resolve to write to Bourne entreat- ing him to think no more of her; or thought of quitting London, and giving him no clue. But the uselessness of these steps soon occurred to her ; the terrible figure of her husband was ever before her, and the prospect of escaping from him was too tempting. A prey to contending emotions, she lay shivering in her bed, uncertain how to act, yet feeling that some dread fatality urged her to ruin. Bourne got up next morning in a state of smiling complacency. He sat down to breakfast, smiling; he broke the eggs, smiling ; he buttered slips of toast, smiling; he opened the newspaper, smiling; and failing in an attempt to read it, threw it on the sofa and poked the fire — still smiling. Breakfast finished, he drew his chair in front of the fire, and placing his slippered feet upon the fender, commenced a mechanical poking of the fire — serenely smiling all the time. Now was the poker suspended in the air as if the Y 322 RANTHOEPE. blow was intercepted by a thought. Now was it thrust with vigour into the centre of some glittering lumps of coal. Now it rested in the fire till it became red hot. Now it rested on the hob to cool, and Bourne regarded it with an indefinite smile. He was chuckling over the success of his acting, and framing plans of future delight. He was picturing to himself her tenderness and jealousy — who can wonder that he smiled? But this self-gratulation was not of long duration, for in the midst of his smiles, he was startled by the appearance of his victim. Florence, pale with fa- tigue, terror, and the emotions of last night, stood before him. " Good God !" he exclaimed, letting the poker drop, but never rising from his seat. She rushed into his embrace. u You are surprised, Henry?" she said, throwing her arms round him. " Did you fancy, then, that I could keep you in suspense? Did you think me coquette enough to enjoy your torture?" He wished from his heart she had been that coquette; but he remained silent. " Why, Henry," she resumed, " you do not speak to me ; you do not even kiss me ! One would say that you were not glad to see me !" " To confess the truth," he replied, " I would rather have seen you at your own house. You have been very imprudent. You may be seen — recognised. 5 ' " Well !" exclaimed the astonished woman. " We should both be lost. You must be mad to brave the danger. LOVE IS BLIND; COUCH NOT HIS EYES, 323 Florence looked at him steadily; his eye shifted from her scrutiny, and her face contracted with agony. " Do you not love me ?" she said, coldly. a 1 do — I do," replied he, rising; " believe me, dearest Florence, it is my love that dictates this prudence. I tremble for you every instant you are here; suppose any one should call?" Without answering, she rVng the bell. " Mr. Bourne is at home to no one" she said, to the servant who entered. " Now, then, your fears are set at rest." " You will drive me mad !" he exclaimed, pacing the room with restless agitation. " How can you be so im- prudent !" The coward heart of the man was crushed by this event ! He had calculated on a quiet intrigue; but the reckless- ness of this first imprudence awakened bitter fears for the future. If the present visit should pass unnoticed, yet he could not hope that the succeeding visits would be equally fortunate ; and then the husband, publicly out- raged, would avenge his dishonour ! This idea distracted him ; it poisoned all his feelings ; it ruined all his hopes. He bitterly cursed himself for having chosen so violent a woman ; and vowed to leave London the next day, and to escape the consequences of an intrigue with her. She watched him for some time in silence ; at length she said: " Henry, did you not bid me come?" " I?" exclaimed Bourne, amazed. " Yes, you. Did you not tell me that you loved me? Did you not curse the fate that separated us? Did you not say how sweet it would have been to pass your days x2 324 RANTHORPE. for ever at rny side ? Did you not swear, that should I be a widow, your hand was ready to confirm your oaths?" These were so many thrusts of a knife into his breast. This rapid turning upon him of oaths, sworn in the heat of successful acting, was overwhelming. " Did you not say this?" she repeated, vehemently. " I did !— I did! I say so'still." " Then be happy — I am a widow!''' " Great God !" said he, thunderstruck. " Is he — is he dead?" he faltered, overcome with the terrible idea which had entered his head that she had murdered him. " No 3 Henry, not dead. But I am a widow ; I am no longer a wife; I have left him; I have dishonoured him; I have broken my vows — I have ceased to be his wife, to become your mistress !" He sank upon the sofa, prostrated with terror. Then suddenly springing up, he exclaimed: "It is not too late; your absence will not have been remarked ; you have been shopping — visiting — any thing. Fly, fly — go home. I will see you this evening. Quick ! quick ! — home !" " Home? I have none, but beneath your roof. I have left my husband for ever. By this time he knows it." Bourne's face became livid with horror, as she pro- nounced these words, and it was with difficulty he could articulate. " He— knows —it !" " Why are you so agitated?" she asked, wonderingly. " Did you not expect me?" A savage smile played upon his lips, as he murmured, " Expect you ?" LOVE IS BLIND ; COUCH NOT HIS EYES. 325 "Yes, expect me! You swore you loved me. Did you suppose that I could listen to your vows, and remain with my husband? Did you suppose — " " Oh ! how could I suppose you mad !" he interrupted — " how could I suppose that you would fly in the face of the world, and ruin yourself and me, and dishonour your husband, by a mad revolt? How .could I suppose you would have acted differently from other women, and drag down unnecessary ruin on us both ?" •' Would you then have waited till he discovered our love? You know him — you know what the consequences would have been. He who killed an innocent man on mere suspicion I" Bourne shuddered. " I have written to him," continued Florence, " to say that I have left his roof for ever, and that in America I hope to find a home." " He will not believe it — he will discover all. He will not rest. Oh God ! what a fool ! what a fool !" He beat his hand against his forehead as he said this. She burst into tears. He paced up and down the room, fear and remorse beating at his heart. And all this while the husband was pacing up and down the street, undergoing a struggle almost as fierce, though of a different kind ! He was returning home just as Florence left. Sur- prised at seeing her go out at so unusual an hour, and without the carriage, without a footman, his jealousy was at once alarmed. He followed her at a short distance, and saw her enter Bourne's house. He was now strug- gling with contending passions. Florence but too clearly saw that she had been deceived: 326 RANTHORPE. that Bourne was a despicable coward, who trembled for himself, and therefore would not protect her. But un- willing to relinquish her last illusion, she said, timidly, " Dearest Henrj, am I to blame? If you loved me, did you not wish me to come and be your companion?" " No l" he retorted, brutally. A low shriek was her only answer. " No ! not at such a cost; you must have known it." Having vented his rage in this brutal speech, he re- sumed his restless walk, absorbed in plans for escap- ing from the consequences of the act for whose immea- surable folly he now cursed himself. Nothing is so cruel as cowardice, and Bourne was an utter coward. Florence stood motionless, as if endeavouring to collect her ideas, which had been scattered by this blow. There are moments of mental paralysis in which the brain has only a dim consciousness of all around — a heavy stupor oppresses the faculties, and blunts all mental pain. In such a state stood Florence. Her eyes were couched, and she had read the heart of her seducer. She knew herself to have been his dupe. He had only acted love! A street-organ at that moment began playing the duet from " EElisire oV Amove" which Florence had been accustomed to sing with Ranthorpe. In an instant, the whole drama of her coquetry, and his love, again passed before her mind. "This is my second punishment for that wickedness," she said, in a mournful under tone, speaking to herself. " I did not think my crime had been great. But it must have been. The measure I meted out to him, is now meted out to me." LOVE IS BLIND; COUCH NOT HIS EYES. 327 Slowly and mechanically she turned to the door. Bourne looked up at her. One withering sneer was all she deigned to avenge herself with ; and in another in- stant he was alone. A deep sigh seemed to remove an intolerable load from his breast. He instantly commenced preparations for quitting England. She descended the stairs slowly, opened the street-door, and found herself face to face with her husband. 328 RANTHORPE. CHAPTER XII. DENOUEMENT. And greadie wormes had gnawen this payned heart Without its feeling pain. FERREX AND PORBEX. Whatever astonishment Florence might have felt at this unexpected apparition of her husband, was merged in terror as she accepted his quietly proffered arm, and walked with him down the street. She had such an opinion of his remorseless vengeance, that all present suf- fering was for a moment arrested; she could only watch his countenance, and seek to divine what was going on in his heart. He was deadly pale, and his lips were com- pressed together by an effort. But his face was otherwise impassive, and gave no indications of what was passing within. Some fearful retaliation was apparently concealed be- neath that stillness, and her flesh crept as she watched his pale, calm face. They reached home. Sir Frederick gave the servants some trifling orders in his usual tone ; and on being left alone with Florence in the drawing-room, he sat himself at the further end of the room, and said : DENOUEMENT. 329 "Lady Hawbucke, if the irreparable wrong that you have done me, has not quite corrupted you — if there is any par- ticle of truth and honour left in you, answer me truly: How long have you and he understood each other?" " We have never understood each other." He frowned, and almost shook with rage. Collecting his ideas, he rose and said : " I might have expected this." " You misapprehend. When I said we had never understood each other, I spoke truly — he never understood me, and I — oh God, what a fearful mistake did I make ! But I know what you mean — and I will answer. You ask me how long he has known that I loved him. Since last night, — Would that I had died before that night !" He started, and then looking incredulously at her, re- peated : " Since last night !" "Yes; did you not get my letter? But I forgot — there was nothing of that in it." ■ ' Your letter ? Where ? when ?" " Go into your dressing-room. Read, read." He went; found the letter, read it, and returned. " And will you swear?" he said, "that last night was the first time you had spoken of love to him?" " I swear it." " Your intention was then to quit me at once ?" " It was." u Thank you for that.'' 1 He paused awhile, and then said, " But why do you quit him ?" " Because he is a despicable coward — a selfish hypocrite; because I found that I had been his dupe ; because his fear of you betrayed him !" it Yet you loved him !" he bitterly murmured. 330 BANTHORPE. She wept, but made no reply. A long pause followed. The scene which had just taken place had altogether altered the current of Sir Frederick's thoughts. If Bourne was such a coward, that he would rather brutally repulse a lovely woman who threw herself into his arms, than run the risk of braving her husband's vengeance, it was quite clear that he would never insinuate any thing in the re- motest way connected with the affair. His silence was certain. As their understanding had been so recent, no one else could as yet have been informed of it. On this score also, Sir Frederick felt relieved. Florence was eagerly, though furtively, watching him, and augured well from the comparative brightness his face assumed. Her terrors began to diminish. They were re- newed, however, as he began to speak again; the glacial tone of his voice was more terrible than any vehemence. " You have done me a wrong; you can in some degree repair it. Are you willing ?" " My life is yours — take it." " I have no need of it. I only ask you to save your character, and mine. As society is at present constituted, your acts may dishonour me ; though mine cannot affect you. I may be dissolute, degraded ; and your name is uncontaminated by my acts. But the slightest of your acts touches me nearly; and when you forget your own self-respect, you drag my honour with you into the mire. Pray allow me to proceed. I will hear you afterwards. We can no longer live together. I relinquish the combat. I cannot defend my own name. I withdraw. But, mark me, the wish for separation must spring from you — the cause from me. You must continue to act the pure wife — I must be the unfaithful husband. You must be above suspicion." DENOUEMENT. 331 " What do you mean ?" " If we part now, or if we part from any cause alledged by me, your character will be stained — and mine with it. If I give the cause, both our characters will be untar- nished. In one month hence, you shall discover in my desk letters written to me from some abandoned woman. These you will take to your mother, heart-broken and in- dignant. You are actress enough for that. You will in- sist on a separation. You will be inflexible. The separation will take place, and all the world will say, ' Poor thing, she has been dreadfully used!' " " And what will they say of you?" " Nothing — except perhaps to wonder at my taste. But let them say what they please, I preserve my name spot- less. Are you prepared to play this little farce ?" " If you insist." " I insist." " Then I have no will." " That shall be my vengeance." He left the room. She remained almost bewildered at what had passed. For a long while she was incredulous. Could he be devising some fearful vengeance under this; or was it simply, as he said, a plan for the preservation of his name from suspicion? Her terrors once banished, her grief returned. But it was a silent grief — a stupor, not a passion. A few months after the events just recorded, Sir Henry Varden came home one day, and said to his wife : le Really, my dear, Catholicism is making alarming progress in England. Who do you think has recently be- come a convert ?" " Who ? Don't tantalise me." 332 EANTHOEPE. " Lady Hawbucke. I have it from fcer mother, who is inconsolable, and highly indignant with her daughter. It seems but the other day she was separated, and now she turns Catholic !" " As a refuge, I suppose, from her sorrows.'' " Egad, if all the women whose husbands are incon- stant threw themselves into the arms of the Church of Rome, England will soon be under the thumb of the Pope." si Don't talk so, my dear Sir Henry. I quite wonder at you. Poor Lady Hawbucke ! Well, who would have thought it?" THE LOVERS. 333 CHAPTER XIII. THE LOVEES. Wenn alle Menschen ein paar Liebende waren, so fiele der Unterschied zwischen Mysticismus, und Nicht-Mysticismus weg. NoVALIS. What is love ? Ask him who lives, what is life? ask him who adores, what is God ? Shelley. And now the little circle of our friends is happy again : greatly to my relief, as doubtless to that also of the reader. We have had nothing but tears for some time : every thing seemed to go wrong, and every body to be miserable. Now, although misery is a good condiment, it is a bad food. It may leaven our daily life ; it may heighten it with glimpses of something above and around it, of which the senses give no intimation; it may help to sharpen the gusto of pleasure; it may add a tenderness to content: but it will not suffice for the staple of life, nor of fiction, which pretends to image life. The reader gets tired of tears : his sympathies become exhausted. The writer also gets tired : his vocabulary becomes exhausted. Thus it is fortunate for all sakes, that our friends happen to be all smiles and hopes just now. 334 KANTHORPE. Isola and Percy were supremely happy — happy as lovers in their height of bliss. Harry was happy. At first, indeed, a shadow of me- lancholy darkened his soul, but the glory of a virtuous ac- tion supported him. It delighted while it pained him to see Isola happy; he felt that he had done well, but he was human, and could not altogether repress a feeling of jealousy. I am not sure that he would ever have been perfectly reconciled to his act, had he not found consola- tion in his love for Fanny. Yes, reader — for Fanny! There is deep meaning in the proverb, lc Many a heart caught in the rebound." No want is more imperious than the want to love. And Harry had, for the last two months, been constantly thrown with Fanny, to be consoled by her, to be sympathised with by her, to talk of love to her, and finally to talk love to her. Parler V amour cest faire V amour : another true proverb ! If any reader should accuse Harry of inconstancy, levity, or want of true affection, he will be grievously mistaken. It was owing to the very overflowing excess of his affec- tion that he loved another. His heart could not be void. He saw the hazel eyes of Fanny full of love for him, and he was subdued by them. Isola was lost to him ; Fanny was there, ready to console him. Did he not act wisely in allowing himself to be consoled? He did. Or rather he could not help it. He glided imperceptibly into love! And Fanny! She had seen much of him, and learned to prize him dearly, before the nattering idea of one day gaining his love ever crossed her mind. She knew him as the noble, generous, affianced lover of her friend ; and this knowledge had removed all the constraint THE LOVERS. 335 in her manner; she could talk to him without fear — but not without danger! Poor Fanny! hers was a heart made to love; but her natural shyness had kept her a stranger to the feeling, until she indulged it for Ran- thorpe, and after that illusion had been dispelled, she had never dared to raise her eyes to another. But Harry she had known in all the intimacy of exquisite unreserve. A brother could not have been more dear to her. And it was not until his disinterested renunciation of I sola had broken the relation which formerly subsisted between them, that she became at all aware of the condition of her heart : she was then too far gone to retract, even had she desired it. These too creatures loved each other; but there was something strange and feverish in their affection. They had both occasional twinges of jealousy. Harry could not always see without a pang the silent adoration with which Isola gazed upon Percy. Fanny could not fail to re- mark it. In spite of this little occasional twinge our four lovers spent a delicious time of it. Percy and Isola saw clearly enough the state of their friends' hearts, and only awaited the avowal. That came at last. They used always to assemble at Isola's in the evening, and the twilight was prolonged to the utmost; and when candles were at last inevitable, they consoled themselves with music for the loss of those mysterious feelings which seem only fitted for the vague and dreamy twilight. And what hours were those of twilight ! In one of them, Percy and Isola were seated in the window recess, hand clasped in hand, speechless from unutterable emotion, gazing into each other's eyes, his cheek gently brushing her silken hair, whose perfume 336 KANTHORPE. thrilled his soul with vague voluptuous ecstasy. Fanny gently ran her ringers over the chords of the piano, pro- ducing wild and plaintive sounds like those ravished from an iEolian harp ; and Harry sat close to her, his elbow leaning on the piano, his head resting on his hand, gazing at her in silent adoration. The plaintive chords moved him strangely. He begged her to sing; and in a soft, small, but touching voice, she sang Paisiello's 11 mio ben. He had heard Isola sing this; and her magnificent voice, every intonation of which made the hearer vibrate beneath its mysterious power, would have made the singing of a Malibran or a Grisi ineffective in comparison; but Fanny's small, veiled, yet pathetic voice had a charm of its own, which if not greatly musical was intensely af- fecting. The tears came into his eyes. He could not thank her. He continued to gaze at her, and she turned her hazel eyes upon him : their light shone through the darkness, and he read their meaning. Then, for the first time, did he read their meaning aright — then did he feel she loved him! No word of love had crossed their lips; and yet in this sudden inspiration all their passion was revealed. He gently placed his hand in hers : a burning pressure was the reply. He bent forward, and their lips met in one long fervid kiss. In that moment they were af- fianced ! The happiness of Percy and Isola now was complete. The engagement of Harry and Fanny, which they had quickly foreseen, removed the only obstacle to their per- fect happiness. New feelings had sprung up in Percy's breast during the last month, which made him regard marriage with peculiar solemnity. In fact, he had not loved, properly speaking, till now. His senses had been THE LOVEES. 337 inflamed, his imagination dazzled, and the yearning, eager, all-curious heart of the boy had been occupied; but his love had been the love of a boy. The love of a boy differs from that of a man in this — it is the wanton enjoyment of a present imperious feeling, from which all serious consideration of the future is ex- cluded. It is mere blind activity of newly-awakened emotions. Hence the rashness of early loves. The boy wants to love; almost any woman will suffice. Hence he is violent, capricious, inconstant, because he only seeks an excitement ; he tries his young wings. The tender feeling of protection, which enters so largely into the love of a man, — the serious thoughts of the duties he owes to the girl who gives up her life to him, and to the children she may bear him, — these, and the thousand minute but powerful influences which affect the man 5 are unknown to the boy. Percy Ranthorpe felt that he was entering upon the most important epoch of his life. Already had many things become clearer to him. He could say, with Shelley, " In no communion with this purest being Kindled intenser zeal, and made me wise In knowledge which, in hers my own mind seeing, Left in the human world few mysteries." 338 EANTHOEPE. CHAPTER XIV. THE COURSE OF TEUE LOVE. Let them anatomise Kegan, see what breeds about her heart. Is there any cause in nature makes these hard hearts? Shakspeare. The insolence of lovers ! They always imagine that when they have avowed their love to each other, the whole business is completed. Parents are nonentities, settlements are figments. Whoever thinks of one or the other ? But, alas ! Fanny and her lover were somewhat rudely awakened to the existence of parental authority by the plain, unqualified refusal to the marriage, with which her mother answered Harry's application. It was more than a refusal — it was an insult. Indeed, when Lady "Wil- mington heard of her daughter's engagement with an obscure surgeon, the reader may imagine her indignation, and the vehemence with which she protested the marriage should never take place. Unfortunately, Fanny, though almost broken-hearted at her mother's refusal, could not be persuaded to dispense with her consent. She dared not brave her mother's anger ; not from any love she felt towards her, but from an exaggerated sense of duty and THE COUESE OF TRUE LOVE. 339 gratitude. Her mother had always treated her with marked indifference ; but she was, nevertheless, her mother. The reader is already somewhat acquainted with Lady- Wilmington's character; one or two touches more are necessary to complete the picture. Lady Wilmington was considered irreproachable by her friends, and invulnerable by her enemies. If the term " respectable," could consistently be applied to any one of the class to which she belonged, one would say that she was eminently " respectable." She had preserved her virtue (!) from the breath of slander— a breath which Shakspeare says a woman cannot escape, though " chaste as ice, as pure as snow," — but I never said Lady Wil- mington was chaste as ice. She had never opened her doors to any woman whose frailties had been openly canvassed. She went to church — once a month. She gave her name to subscriptions to several charitable institutions: her name, indeed, but rarely her money. Generosity, charity, and other Christian sentiments, were for ever on her lips : a fact which, perhaps, accounted for their absence elsewhere. A character like hers, reduced to its strict formula — without heart as without intellect — appears, at first sight, the mere exaggeration of a novelist, and the reader refuses to believe that such a woman could anywhere be tole- rated. But, good and gentle reader ! I have not been thus minute in painting a mere exaggeration. It is a portrait — taken at many sittings, and under many different lights — a portrait, unfortunately, that might be hung up in many a drawing-room, and pronounced " most like." And yet is it not strange that the reader should doubt its truth, because, although the features themselves are z2 340 KANTHORPE. neither untrue nor exaggerated, yet inasmuch as the ex- pression is absent, so the face seems revolting. I have given the moral characteristics of Lady Wilmington : but the manner, which was as drapery to her worthlessness — manner by which most people are judged — this I could not give. Not that her manner was more winning than that of ordinary people ; but such as it was, it served to cover a hideous skeleton. Perfect in all those movements which nothing but long habit can successfully assume, and which demarcates the aristocracy from the rest of society, her very affectations seemed to be natural to her. Soft, lan- guishing, low-voiced, and indifferent, she was almost made up of negations, and thus never offended. There was an absence of every thing positive in her manner, which pre- sented any single point either for approval or dislike; except when she startled by a sarcasm, and then, indeed, she seemed to compensate for previous langour by the sparkling malice of her eyes. The most cold and cruel things were uttered with a gusto which made you start, especially in so languid a person : it was, indeed, revolt- ing to see this soft-mannered woman suddenly aroused to eager cruelty (which alone seemed capable of arousing her) — it was like looking on the sleek, velvety paws of a tiger, out of which softness suddenly spring hideous talons ! Fanny, with her opposite sentiments, soon detected her mother's adoration of the world, and the world's ways, and thought she sacrificed too much to it ; but she had not the slightest suspicion of her insincerity; and had heard her so often attribute to herself the virtues of generosity, charity, self-sacrifice, and religion, that she received the existence of these as matters of course. THE COURSE OF TRUE LOVE. 341 Affection there was none between them: all her ad- vances to her mother had been repelled; all her senti- ments opposed; and all her sympathies ridiculed. But Fanny could not forget the relationship ; and her mother hoped, she said, " That no daughter o£mine can ever forget the immense debt of gratitude she owes to me — never forget the sacri- fices I have made for my children — sacrifices which no other mother would have made." Fanny did not clearly comprehend in what this debt consisted, but as her mother was always referring to it, she could not doubt that it had been contracted. The " sacrifices" having never been specified, were equally received upon trust ; and the deed, or deeds, which no other mother would have done, were left to her force of imagination. In sober seriousness Fanny believed herself bound, more than any other child had ever been, to sacrifice herself for the parent who had done so much for her. So that in spite of the want of filial love, there was a strong sense of filial duty in poor Fanny's breast; and when her mother wept with her at the mention of Harry — when she declaimed in her usual style on the sacrifices she had made, and which were thus to be requited; when she painted the horror she should suffer from such a disgraceful alliance; when she told her what the world would say, already too busy as it was with her unfortunate sister, Florence ; how it would blame the parent who consented, more than the child who lost herself ; and how this " would infallibly shorten her days," — can we wonder that Fanny's heart sunk within her, and that she determined not to act in outrage to the feel- ings of one " who had done so much for her?" 342 RANTHOKPE. She trusted that time would soften her mother's objec- tions ; trusted that when her mother saw how real and unshakeable was the love she bore him, consent would not be long withheld. She little knew her mother ! Percy and Isola, as may be expected, were deeply dis- tressed at Harry's situation. On finding Lady Wilming- ton so opposed to the match, Percy called on her. He had not been within her doors since that day on which Florence rejected him ; and it was with violent agitation that he ascended the staircase. He mastered his feelings sufficiently to meet Lady Wilmington with becoming suavity. She was delighted to see him, for he was cele- brated, and she had been often foiled in her attempts to allure him to her house. She upbraided him with his fickleness towards " old friends," and told him that she must positively keep him to dinner. He accepted; made himself immensely agreeable, and having stayed till all the guests had departed, he opened to her the real purpose of his visit. She was indignant at the idea of the match. He was eloquent — earnest — but he had to do with Lady Wilmington. He left the house, bitterly convinced that her consent would never be given. On hearing this, Wynton, who had been powerfully affected by the noble generosity displayed by Harry, told Percy that he thought of going himself to Lady Wilming- ton, and interceding in his friend's behalf. " I have a strange suspicion that she will be in some way influenced by me." " I fear not, Wynton. But you can try." " It will be extremely painful forme to see her — I have not seen her since the day on which she became Lady Wilmington ! Yet, for Harry, I would do a great deal. THE COURSE OF TRUE LOVE. 343 Indeed, I should be ashamed to consider my own feelings in a case where he is concerned — he, who so little considers his own !" On the following day, Lady Wilmington was sitting in her drawing-room, really vexed. She was not apt to be angry ; but she had that morning suffered a shock in her tenderest point. Fanny had refused — positively refused — a brilliant match. The girl's head was completely turned by silly romance. She had thrown away her best chance of happiness ; and thrown it away out of some nonsensical feelings for an adventurer. Lady Wilmington almost stormed. What could the girl expect ? What could she come to ? Was that the way to gain a mother's consent ? Was that the way to gain a mother's pardon? Lady Wilmington was astonished. Still greater was her astonishment and agitation as the servant handed her a card on which she read Wynton's name. Scarcely conscious of what she was saying, she bade that he should be admitted; and before she had recovered her self-possession, her former lover stood before her. Wynton was deadly pale. His countenance betokened the mastery of a dreadful struggle passing within. His bearing was haughty and cold : the perfect reverse of his usual manner. He had struggled ; he had conquered ; and he was there ; — there, in the presence of her whom he had not seen for twenty years ! The sight would at all times have been painful to him ; but to see her so changed — to see the giddy, lovely, heartless, but fascinating girl, grown into the sedate, heartless, and repulsive woman, was what he had not prepared himself for. He, too, was changed, and she noticed it. Twenty years of struggle and improvidence had robbed him of 344 EANTHOKPE. his personal advantages ; but it had not robbed Mm of his intellectual superiority; and in the careworn, intelligent, haughty man who now stood before her, she saw little change for the worse. She rose and held out her hand. He remained motion- less, at if disdaining to notice her advances. She walked towards him, and, with sudden warmth, said: " Let us be friends." He fixed his eyes steadily upon hers; they did not waver beneath his glance. He answered coldly, while a slight sneer quivered his lip : " Your ladyship forgets I was your brother's tutor." She was piqued, and said reproachfully : " I only remember that I once loved you." "Loved?" " Yes, loved. Ah ! I know how shockingly I behaved to you. But, indeed, it was not my fault. I had not courage to go through with my part. When I saw all my friends assembled — when I heard myself called upon to pronounce the fatal ' Yes,' — I was frightened, and pro- nounced it. Had you been there — had I but caught a glimpse of your eye, I should have braved them all. But I was alone, and I was hurried into a marriage I abhorred." She spoke with warmth; a bitter sneer was all the answer he could give. She perceived it, and sinking into a chair, covered her face with her hands, and wept. She was acting. Yet, as so often happens with persons of keen nervous sensibility, she felt something of that passion which she was portraying. Above all, she wished ta impress him with belief in her sincerity. The more in-* credulous he appeared, the more she redoubled her efforts. At that moment she would have given any thing to see a tear in his eye, to hear the words of pardon from his lips. THE COURSE OF TRUE LOVE. 345 She had nearly succeeded, when lie broke to her the object of his visit. " You can remove my doubts at once," he said. " Give your consent to the marriage of your daughter with the man she loves, and you will best con- vince me that you really prize affection above wealth.' 5 " Consent to Fanny's marriage?" " Ah ! I see — you shrink from it." "No, no, no. Believe me, no. If she really loves him. There. — I will consent. Now, are you convinced?" He took her hand, and kissed it. " You have made me happy," said he. " Then you forgive me?" "I do." Wynton did forgive her at the moment. He had not, however, long left the house before his old opinion of her returned, and he looked upon that scene as a well-acted piece of sentiment. But the motive he could not fathom. Let me endeavour to explain it. Lady Wilmington was, as I said, a creature of sensitive nerves, but small brain. She was consequently a creature of impulses. The impulse to convince Wynton of her not being the worthless creature he must necessarily think her, was na- turally a strong one. To convince him, she was reckless as to the means. Besides, the fact of Fanny's refusal of a brilliant match, seemed to indicate an obstinacy her mother had little hope of conquering. And if Fanny would not make a good match, there was less harm in her making a bad one. This had some influence with her mother. And thus the cold, heartless woman, who would never have consented to "a degrading alliance," although her daughter's happiness depended on it, consented to it for the sake of a little triumph in acting. This would be incredible, did we not know that to such 346 EANTHOEPE. an egotist, a daughter's happiness was nothing; but a suc- cessful piece of acting was an intense gratification. It is frightful to think that there are such people, and that those people should be parents; but it is unfortunately too true. I, who paint this portrait, seriously and soberly de- clare that I subdue, rather than exaggerate, the colours. Had I drawn in all her hideousness the original who sat for this picture, the reader would have turned away in in- credulous disgust. Let him profit, if he can, from the feeble sketch. PEAL THE MARRIAGE BELLS. 347 CHAPTER XV. PEAL THE MARRIAGE BELLS. Come home, home to my heart, thou banish'd peace ; Hymen shall now Set all his torches burning to give light Throughout the land. Ford : Lover's Melancholy. And now our hero's troubles are o'er. He is happy ; his bride stands at the altar beside him. Behind him are Harry and Fanny, waiting also to be united by the same priest. Privately, in Kensington Church, were these four mar- ried ; and seldom has any church been graced with four nobler beings. Isola was magnificent. The flush of modesty, the bride's delicious colour, had given her cheek that tinge which at other times it wanted, and had given to her calm, deep eyes, a passion and a brilliancy which stirred the depths of the spectator's soul. She was incom- parably beautiful at that moment. Kanthorpe gazed upon her with passionate pride ; and felt his heart too full, as he thought how, after so many struggles, he had found at length the path of peace ; how, after many wan- derings on the rugged highway, he had reached the Happy Valley. 348 RANTHORPE. Only second to them in charms were Harry and Fanny. She looked as beautiful on that occasion to strangers, as she was always to those who loved her. Shy, and trem- blingly happy, she formed a pleasant contrast to her friend; and as she looked up into the noble countenance of her lover, and met his fond, protecting gaze, she made as sweet a picture of the timid gentlewoman as painter or poet could desire. But although there was little pomp displayed at the wedding, it had a splendour of its own in the warmth of the affections therein engaged. All our hero's old friends were present. Joyce looked more sunny than ever, and Wynton gave Isola away. Lady Theresa and Lady Wilmington were both stiffly present ; and an uncle of Fanny's, a bright, good-humoured creature, gave her away. "Were mine a female's pen, I would delight you with a minute and vivacious account of the whole ceremony, dresses and all. I would tell you how every one behaved, from the bride down to the pew-opener. I would intro- duce you to the breakfast, and its exhilarating festivity. In a word, I would place before you, imaginative reader, all that I must now leave to your imagination. But my pen has no such power. EPILOGUE. 349 EPILOGUE. Then gently scan your brother man ; Still gentler sister woman. Though they may gang a kennin' wrang : To step aside is human. One point must still be greatly dark— The moving why they do it ; And just as lamely can ye mark How far, perhaps, they rue it. Burns. He " 4 was a man who preached from the text of his own errors ; and whose wisdom, beautiful as a flower that might have risen from seed sown from above, was, in fact, a scion from the root of personal suf- fering. Wordsworth (of Burns). RANTHORPE is now exquisitely happy. Two children are playing round his knees, and twining their embraces round his heart. Isola grows more lovely every time I see her, and not even maternity, and increased experience of the world, seem to brush off the bloom of that simplicity and ingenuousness which makes her a godlike child. Harry is also a happy husband and father ; and Fanny the happiest of wives, and most anxious of mothers. 350 RANTHORPE. Ranthorpe's life is now one of activity and happiness: the true ideal of an author's life. He has bitterly ex- piated his early error ; and in that expiation recovered the purity and independence of mind, the confidence in his mission, and reliance on his means of fulfilling it, without which a man may indeed become rich and popular, but no man can become a great author. How much of his present serenity of mind he owes to Isola, let those answer who have known the gentle influence of a woman! Certain it is, that if those who remember his early efforts compare them with his later works, they may marvel at the delicacy and gentleness, wedded to strength and solidity, which present such a contrast to the turbulence, inequality, and exaggeration of his " Dreams of Youth," and " Quintus Curtius." He has won his spurs. His genius has begun to take its magnificent flight far above the reach of other wings. He is in his twenty-fifth year, and his genius is free to operate untrammelled upon the materials afforded him by experience. He has felt, and he has thought: he has dreamed, and he has suffered. He is now to " preach from the text of his own errors" — to make his experience incarnate in song. After many a giddy faintness, and many a sick despon- dency, he has reached a table land, from whence he can look down calmly on the path before him. He has walked up through mists, but has reached a certain height. The storms are below him. The poor attorney's clerk has become an honoured author. He is no longer vulgarly lion- ised ; he is respected and courted. His footing in society is no longer dependent upon the caprice of a drawing- room. It is the security of that intellectual power which EPILOGUE. 351 forces the world to bend the knee. The poor, dreamy boy, self-taught, self-aided, has risen into power. He wields a pen. And the pen, in our age, weighs heavier in the social scale than the sword of a Norman Baron ! THE END. C. WHITING, BEAUFORT HOUSE, STBAND. S m